Advertisement
Guest User

Untitled

a guest
Aug 7th, 2017
1,157
0
Never
Not a member of Pastebin yet? Sign Up, it unlocks many cool features!
text 433.25 KB | None | 0 0
  1. CHAPTER 30
  2.  
  3. Security warden Claude Grouard simmered with rage as he stood over his prostrate captive in front of the Mona Lisa. This bastard killed Jacques Saunière! Saunière had been like a well-loved father to Grouard and his security team.
  4. Grouard wanted nothing more than to pull the trigger and bury a bullet in Robert Langdon's back. As senior warden, Grouard was one of the few guards who actually carried a loaded weapon. He reminded himself, however, that killing Langdon would be a generous fate compared to the misery about to be communicated by Bezu Fache and the French prison system.
  5. Grouard yanked his walkie-talkie off his belt and attempted to radio for backup. All he heard was static. The additional electronic security in this chamber always wrought havoc with the guards' communications. I have to move to the doorway. Still aiming his weapon at Langdon, Grouard began backing slowly toward the entrance. On his third step, he spied something that made him stop short.
  6. What the hell is that!
  7. An inexplicable mirage was materializing near the center of the room. A silhouette. There was someone else in the room? A woman was moving through the darkness, walking briskly toward the far left wall. In front of her, a purplish beam of light swung back and forth across the floor, as if she were searching for something with a colored flashlight.
  8. Qui est l?? Grouard demanded, feeling his adrenaline spike for a second time in the last thirty seconds. He suddenly didn't know where to aim his gun or what direction to move.
  9. PTS, the woman replied calmly, still scanning the floor with her light.
  10. Police Technique et Scientifique. Grouard was sweating now. I thought all the agents were gone! He now recognized the purple light as ultraviolet, consistent with a PTS team, and yet he could not understand why DCPJ would be looking for evidence in here.
  11. Votre nom! Grouard yelled, instinct telling him something was amiss. R?pondez!
  12. C'est mot, the voice responded in calm French. Sophie Neveu.
  13. Somewhere in the distant recesses of Grouard's mind, the name registered. Sophie Neveu? That was the name of Saunière's granddaughter, wasn't it? She used to come in here as a little kid, but that was years ago. This couldn't possibly be her! And even if it were Sophie Neveu, that was hardly a reason to trust her; Grouard had heard the rumors of the painful falling-out between Saunière and his granddaughter.
  14. You know me, the woman called. And Robert Langdon did not kill my grandfather. Believe me.
  15. Warden Grouard was not about to take that on faith. I need backup! Trying his walkie-talkie again, he got only static. The entrance was still a good twenty yards behind him, and Grouard began backing up slowly, choosing to leave his gun trained on the man on the floor. As Grouard inched backward, he could see the woman across the room raising her UV light and scrutinizing a large painting that hung on the far side of the Salle des Etats, directly opposite the Mona Lisa.
  16. Grouard gasped, realizing which painting it was.
  17. What in the name of God is she doing?
  18.  
  19. Across the room, Sophie Neveu felt a cold sweat breaking across her forehead. Langdon was still spread-eagle on the floor. Hold on, Robert. Almost there. Knowing the guard would never actually shoot either of them, Sophie now turned her attention back to the matter at hand, scanning the entire area around one masterpiece in particular—another Da Vinci. But the UV light revealed nothing out of the ordinary. Not on the floor, on the walls, or even on the canvas itself.
  20. There must be something here!
  21. Sophie felt totally certain she had deciphered her grandfather's intentions correctly.
  22. What else could he possibly intend?
  23. The masterpiece she was examining was a five-foot-tall canvas. The bizarre scene Da Vinci had painted included an awkwardly posed Virgin Mary sitting with Baby Jesus, John the Baptist, and the Angel Uriel on a perilous outcropping of rocks. When Sophie was a little girl, no trip to the Mona Lisa had been complete without her grandfather dragging her across the room to see this second painting.
  24. Grand-père, I'm here! But I don't see it!
  25. Behind her, Sophie could hear the guard trying to radio again for help.
  26. Think!
  27. She pictured the message scrawled on the protective glass of the Mona Lisa. So dark the con of man. The painting before her had no protective glass on which to write a message, and Sophie knew her grandfather would never have defaced this masterpiece by writing on the painting itself. She paused. At least not on the front. Her eyes shot upward, climbing the long cables that dangled from the ceiling to support the canvas.
  28. Could that be it? Grabbing the left side of the carved wood frame, she pulled it toward her. The painting was large and the backing flexed as she swung it away from the wall. Sophie slipped her head and shoulders in behind the painting and raised the black light to inspect the back.
  29. It took only seconds to realize her instinct had been wrong. The back of the painting was pale and blank. There was no purple text here, only the mottled brown backside of aging canvas and—
  30. Wait.
  31. Sophie's eyes locked on an incongruous glint of lustrous metal lodged near the bottom edge of the frame's wooden armature. The object was small, partially wedged in the slit where the canvas met the frame. A shimmering gold chain dangled off it.
  32. To Sophie's utter amazement, the chain was affixed to a familiar gold key. The broad, sculpted head was in the shape of a cross and bore an engraved seal she had not seen since she was nine years old. A fleur-de-lis with the initials P.S. In that instant, Sophie felt the ghost of her grandfather whispering in her ear. When the time comes, the key will be yours. A tightness gripped her throat as she realized that her grandfather, even in death, had kept his promise. This key opens a box, his voice was saying, where I keep many secrets.
  33. Sophie now realized that the entire purpose of tonight's word game had been this key. Her grandfather had it with him when he was killed. Not wanting it to fall into the hands of the police, he hid it behind this painting. Then he devised an ingenious treasure hunt to ensure only Sophie would find it.
  34. Au secours! the guard's voice yelled.
  35. Sophie snatched the key from behind the painting and slipped it deep in her pocket along with the UV penlight. Peering out from behind the canvas, she could see the guard was still trying desperately to raise someone on the walkie-talkie. He was backing toward the entrance, still aiming the gun firmly at Langdon.
  36. Au secours! he shouted again into his radio.
  37. Static.
  38. He can't transmit, Sophie realized, recalling that tourists with cell phones often got frustrated in here when they tried to call home to brag about seeing the Mona Lisa. The extra surveillance wiring in the walls made it virtually impossible to get a carrier unless you stepped out into the hall. The guard was backing quickly toward the exit now, and Sophie knew she had to act immediately.
  39. Gazing up at the large painting behind which she was partially ensconced, Sophie realized that Leonardo da Vinci, for the second time tonight, was there to help.
  40.  
  41. Another few meters, Grouard told himself, keeping his gun leveled.
  42. Arr?tez! Ou je la d?truis! the woman's voice echoed across the room.
  43. Grouard glanced over and stopped in his tracks. Mon dieu, non!
  44. Through the reddish haze, he could see that the woman had actually lifted the large painting off its cables and propped it on the floor in front of her. At five feet tall, the canvas almost entirely hid her body. Grouard's first thought was to wonder why the painting's trip wires hadn't set off alarms, but of course the artwork cable sensors had yet to be reset tonight. What is she doing!
  45. When he saw it, his blood went cold.
  46. The canvas started to bulge in the middle, the fragile outlines of the Virgin Mary, Baby Jesus, and John the Baptist beginning to distort.
  47. Non! Grouard screamed, frozen in horror as he watched the priceless Da Vinci stretching. The woman was pushing her knee into the center of the canvas from behind! NON!
  48. Grouard wheeled and aimed his gun at her but instantly realized it was an empty threat. The canvas was only fabric, but it was utterly impenetrable—a six-million-dollar piece of body armor.
  49. I can't put a bullet through a Da Vinci!
  50. Set down your gun and radio, the woman said in calm French, or I'll put my knee through this painting. I think you know how my grandfather would feel about that.
  51. Grouard felt dizzy. Please... no. That's Madonna of the Rocks! He dropped his gun and radio, raising his hands over his head.
  52. Thank you, the woman said. Now do exactly as I tell you, and everything will work out fine.
  53.  
  54. Moments later, Langdon's pulse was still thundering as he ran beside Sophie down the emergency stairwell toward the ground level. Neither of them had said a word since leaving the trembling Louvre guard lying in the Salle des Etats. The guard's pistol was now clutched tightly in Langdon's hands, and he couldn't wait to get rid of it. The weapon felt heavy and dangerously foreign.
  55. Taking the stairs two at a time, Langdon wondered if Sophie had any idea how valuable a painting she had almost ruined. Her choice in art seemed eerily pertinent to tonight's adventure. The Da Vinci she had grabbed, much like the Mona Lisa, was notorious among art historians for its plethora of hidden pagan symbolism.
  56. You chose a valuable hostage, he said as they ran.
  57. Madonna of the Rocks, she replied. But I didn't choose it, my grandfather did. He left me a little something behind the painting.
  58. Langdon shot her a startled look. What!? But how did you know which painting? Why Madonna of the Rocks?
  59. So dark the con of man. She flashed a triumphant smile. I missed the first two anagrams, Robert. I wasn't about to miss the third.
  60.  
  61. CHAPTER 31
  62.  
  63. They're dead! Sister Sandrine stammered into the telephone in her Saint-Sulpice residence. She was leaving a message on an answering machine. Please pick up! They're all dead!
  64. The first three phone numbers on the list had produced terrifying results—a hysterical widow, a detective working late at a murder scene, and a somber priest consoling a bereaved family. All three contacts were dead. And now, as she called the fourth and final number—the number she was not supposed to call unless the first three could not be reached—she got an answering machine. The outgoing message offered no name but simply asked the caller to leave a message.
  65. The floor panel has been broken! she pleaded as she left the message. The other three are dead!
  66. Sister Sandrine did not know the identities of the four men she protected, but the private phone numbers stashed beneath her bed were for use on only one condition.
  67. If that floor panel is ever broken, the faceless messenger had told her, it means the upper echelon has been breached. One of us has been mortally threatened and been forced to tell a desperate lie. Call the numbers. Warn the others. Do not fail us in this.
  68. It was a silent alarm. Foolproof in its simplicity. The plan had amazed her when she first heard it. If the identity of one brother was compromised, he could tell a lie that would start in motion a mechanism to warn the others. Tonight, however, it seemed that more than one had been compromised.
  69. Please answer, she whispered in fear. Where are you?
  70. Hang up the phone, a deep voice said from the doorway.
  71. Turning in terror, she saw the massive monk. He was clutching the heavy iron candle stand. Shaking, she set the phone back in the cradle.
  72. They are dead, the monk said. All four of them. And they have played me for a fool. Tell me where the keystone is.
  73. I don't know! Sister Sandrine said truthfully. That secret is guarded by others. Others who are dead!
  74. The man advanced, his white fists gripping the iron stand. You are a sister of the Church, and yet you serve them?
  75. Jesus had but one true message, Sister Sandrine said defiantly. I cannot see that message in Opus Dei.
  76. A sudden explosion of rage erupted behind the monk's eyes. He lunged, lashing out with the candle stand like a club. As Sister Sandrine fell, her last feeling was an overwhelming sense of foreboding.
  77. All four are dead.
  78. The precious truth is lost forever.
  79.  
  80. CHAPTER 32
  81.  
  82. The security alarm on the west end of the Denon Wing sent the pigeons in the nearby Tuileries Gardens scattering as Langdon and Sophie dashed out of the bulkhead into the Paris night. As they ran across the plaza to Sophie's car, Langdon could hear police sirens wailing in the distance.
  83. That's it there, Sophie called, pointing to a red snub-nosed two-seater parked on the plaza.
  84. She's kidding, right? The vehicle was easily the smallest car Langdon had ever seen.
  85. SmartCar, she said. A hundred kilometers to the liter.
  86. Langdon had barely thrown himself into the passenger seat before Sophie gunned the SmartCar up and over a curb onto a gravel divider. He gripped the dash as the car shot out across a sidewalk and bounced back down over into the small rotary at Carrousel du Louvre.
  87. For an instant, Sophie seemed to consider taking the shortcut across the rotary by plowing straight ahead, through the median's perimeter hedge, and bisecting the large circle of grass in the center.
  88. No! Langdon shouted, knowing the hedges around Carrousel du Louvre were there to hide the perilous chasm in the center—La Pyramide Invers?e—the upside-down pyramid skylight he had seen earlier from inside the museum. It was large enough to swallow their Smart-Car in a single gulp. Fortunately, Sophie decided on the more conventional route, jamming the wheel hard to the right, circling properly until she exited, cut left, and swung into the northbound lane, accelerating toward Rue de Rivoli.
  89. The two-tone police sirens blared louder behind them, and Langdon could see the lights now in his side view mirror. The SmartCar engine whined in protest as Sophie urged it faster away from the Louvre. Fifty yards ahead, the traffic light at Rivoli turned red. Sophie cursed under her breath and kept racing toward it. Langdon felt his muscles tighten.
  90. Sophie?
  91. Slowing only slightly as they reached the intersection, Sophie flicked her headlights and stole a quick glance both ways before flooring the accelerator again and carving a sharp left turn through the empty intersection onto Rivoli. Accelerating west for a quarter of a mile, Sophie banked to the right around a wide rotary. Soon they were shooting out the other side onto the wide avenue of Champs-Elys?es.
  92. As they straightened out, Langdon turned in his seat, craning his neck to look out the rear window toward the Louvre. The police did not seem to be chasing them. The sea of blue lights was assembling at the museum.
  93. His heartbeat finally slowing, Langdon turned back around. That was interesting.
  94. Sophie didn't seem to hear. Her eyes remained fixed ahead down the long thoroughfare of Champs-Elys?es, the two-mile stretch of posh storefronts that was often called the Fifth Avenue of Paris. The embassy was only about a mile away, and Langdon settled into his seat. So dark the con of man. Sophie's quick thinking had been impressive. Madonna of the Rocks.
  95. Sophie had said her grandfather left her something behind the painting. A final message? Langdon could not help but marvel over Saunière's brilliant hiding place; Madonna of the Rocks was yet another fitting link in the evening's chain of interconnected symbolism. Saunière, it seemed, at every turn, was reinforcing his fondness for the dark and mischievous side of Leonardo da Vinci.
  96. Da Vinci's original commission for Madonna of the Rocks had come from an organization known as the Confraternity of the Immaculate Conception, which needed a painting for the centerpiece of an altar triptych in their church of San Francesco in Milan. The nuns gave Leonardo specific dimensions, and the desired theme for the painting—the Virgin Mary, baby John the Baptist, Uriel, and Baby Jesus sheltering in a cave. Although Da Vinci did as they requested, when he delivered the work, the group reacted with horror. He had filled the painting with explosive and disturbing details.
  97. The painting showed a blue-robed Virgin Mary sitting with her arm around an infant child, presumably Baby Jesus. Opposite Mary sat Uriel, also with an infant, presumably baby John the Baptist. Oddly, though, rather than the usual Jesus-blessing-John scenario, it was baby John who was blessing Jesus... and Jesus was submitting to his authority! More troubling still, Mary was holding one hand high above the head of infant John and making a decidedly threatening gesture—her fingers looking like eagle's talons, gripping an invisible head. Finally, the most obvious and frightening image: Just below Mary's curled fingers, Uriel was making a cutting gesture with his hand—as if slicing the neck of the invisible head gripped by Mary's claw-like hand.
  98. Langdon's students were always amused to learn that Da Vinci eventually mollified the confraternity by painting them a second, watered-down version of Madonna of the Rocks in which everyone was arranged in a more orthodox manner. The second version now hung in London's National Gallery under the name Virgin of the Rocks, although Langdon still preferred the Louvre's more intriguing original.
  99. As Sophie gunned the car up Champs-Elys?es, Langdon said, The painting. What was behind it?
  100. Her eyes remained on the road. I'll show you once we're safely inside the embassy.
  101. You'll show it to me? Langdon was surprised. He left you a physical object?
  102. Sophie gave a curt nod. Embossed with a fleur-de-lis and the initials P.S.
  103. Langdon couldn't believe his ears.
  104.  
  105. We're going to make it, Sophie thought as she swung the SmartCar's wheel to the right, cutting sharply past the luxurious H?tel de Crillon into Paris's tree-lined diplomatic neighborhood. The embassy was less than a mile away now. She was finally feeling like she could breathe normally again.
  106. Even as she drove, Sophie's mind remained locked on the key in her pocket, her memories of seeing it many years ago, the gold head shaped as an equal-armed cross, the triangular shaft, the indentations, the embossed flowery seal, and the letters P.S.
  107. Although the key barely had entered Sophie's thoughts through the years, her work in the intelligence community had taught her plenty about security, and now the key's peculiar tooling no longer looked so mystifying. A laser-tooled varying matrix. Impossible to duplicate. Rather than teeth that moved tumblers, this key's complex series of laser-burned pockmarks was examined by an electric eye. If the eye determined that the hexagonal pockmarks were correctly spaced, arranged, and rotated, then the lock would open.
  108. Sophie could not begin to imagine what a key like this opened, but she sensed Robert would be able to tell her. After all, he had described the key's embossed seal without ever seeing it. The cruciform on top implied the key belonged to some kind of Christian organization, and yet Sophie knew of no churches that used laser-tooled varying matrix keys.
  109. Besides, my grandfather was no Christian....
  110. Sophie had witnessed proof of that ten years ago. Ironically, it had been another key—a far more normal one—that had revealed his true nature to her.
  111. The afternoon had been warm when she landed at Charles de Gaulle Airport and hailed a taxi home. Grand-père will be so surprised to see me, she thought. Returning from graduate school in Britain for spring break a few days early, Sophie couldn't wait to see him and tell him all about the encryption methods she was studying.
  112. When she arrived at their Paris home, however, her grandfather was not there. Disappointed, she knew he had not been expecting her and was probably working at the Louvre. But it's Saturday afternoon, she realized. He seldom worked on weekends. On weekends, he usually—
  113. Grinning, Sophie ran out to the garage. Sure enough, his car was gone. It was the weekend. Jacques Saunière despised city driving and owned a car for one destination only—his vacation ch?teau in Normandy, north of Paris. Sophie, after months in the congestion of London, was eager for the smells of nature and to start her vacation right away. It was still early evening, and she decided to leave immediately and surprise him. Borrowing a friend's car, Sophie drove north, winding into the deserted moon-swept hills near Creully. She arrived just after ten o'clock, turning down the long private driveway toward her grandfather's retreat. The access road was over a mile long, and she was halfway down it before she could start to see the house through the trees—a mammoth, old stone ch?teau nestled in the woods on the side of a hill.
  114. Sophie had half expected to find her grandfather asleep at this hour and was excited to see the house twinkling with lights. Her delight turned to surprise, however, when she arrived to find the driveway filled with parked cars—Mercedeses, BMWs, Audis, and a Rolls-Royce.
  115. Sophie stared a moment and then burst out laughing. My grand-père, the famous recluse! Jacques Saunière, it seemed, was far less reclusive than he liked to pretend. Clearly he was hosting a party while Sophie was away at school, and from the looks of the automobiles, some of Paris's most influential people were in attendance.
  116. Eager to surprise him, she hurried to the front door. When she got there, though, she found it locked. She knocked. Nobody answered. Puzzled, she walked around and tried the back door. It too was locked. No answer.
  117. Confused, she stood a moment and listened. The only sound she heard was the cool Normandy air letting out a low moan as it swirled through the valley.
  118. No music.
  119. No voices.
  120. Nothing.
  121. In the silence of the woods, Sophie hurried to the side of the house and clambered up on a woodpile, pressing her face to the living room window. What she saw inside made no sense at all.
  122. Nobody's here!
  123. The entire first floor looked deserted.
  124. Where are all the people?
  125. Heart racing, Sophie ran to the woodshed and got the spare key her grandfather kept hidden under the kindling box. She ran to the front door and let herself in. As she stepped into the deserted foyer, the control panel for the security system started blinking red—a warning that the entrant had ten seconds to type the proper code before the security alarms went off.
  126. He has the alarm on during a party?
  127. Sophie quickly typed the code and deactivated the system.
  128. Entering, she found the entire house uninhabited. Upstairs too. As she descended again to the deserted living room, she stood a moment in the silence, wondering what could possibly be happening.
  129. It was then that Sophie heard it.
  130. Muffled voices. And they seemed to be coming from underneath her. Sophie could not imagine. Crouching, she put her ear to the floor and listened. Yes, the sound was definitely coming from below. The voices seemed to be singing, or... chanting? She was frightened. Almost more eerie than the sound itself was the realization that this house did not even have a basement.
  131. At least none I've ever seen.
  132. Turning now and scanning the living room, Sophie's eyes fell to the only object in the entire house that seemed out of place—her grandfather's favorite antique, a sprawling Aubusson tapestry. It usually hung on the east wall beside the fireplace, but tonight it had been pulled aside on its brass rod, exposing the wall behind it.
  133. Walking toward the bare wooden wall, Sophie sensed the chanting getting louder. Hesitant, she leaned her ear against the wood. The voices were clearer now. People were definitely chanting... intoning words Sophie could not discern.
  134. The space behind this wall is hollow!
  135. Feeling around the edge of the panels, Sophie found a recessed fingerhold. It was discreetly crafted. A sliding door. Heart pounding, she placed her finger in the slot and pulled it. With noiseless precision, the heavy wall slid sideways. From out of the darkness beyond, the voices echoed up.
  136. Sophie slipped through the door and found herself on a rough-hewn stone staircase that spiraled downward. She'd been coming to this house since she was a child and yet had no idea this staircase even existed!
  137. As she descended, the air grew cooler. The voices clearer. She heard men and women now. Her line of sight was limited by the spiral of the staircase, but the last step was now rounding into view. Beyond it, she could see a small patch of the basement floor—stone, illuminated by the flickering orange blaze of firelight.
  138. Holding her breath, Sophie inched down another few steps and crouched down to look. It took her several seconds to process what she was seeing.
  139. The room was a grotto—a coarse chamber that appeared to have been hollowed from the granite of the hillside. The only light came from torches on the walls. In the glow of the flames, thirty or so people stood in a circle in the center of the room.
  140. I'm dreaming, Sophie told herself. A dream. What else could this be?
  141. Everyone in the room was wearing a mask. The women were dressed in white gossamer gowns and golden shoes. Their masks were white, and in their hands they carried golden orbs. The men wore long black tunics, and their masks were black. They looked like pieces in a giant chess set. Everyone in the circle rocked back and forth and chanted in reverence to something on the floor before them... something Sophie could not see.
  142. The chanting grew steady again. Accelerating. Thundering now. Faster. The participants took a step inward and knelt. In that instant, Sophie could finally see what they all were witnessing. Even as she staggered back in horror, she felt the image searing itself into her memory forever. Overtaken by nausea, Sophie spun, clutching at the stone walls as she clambered back up the stairs. Pulling the door closed, she fled the deserted house, and drove in a tearful stupor back to Paris.
  143. That night, with her life shattered by disillusionment and betrayal, she packed her belongings and left her home. On the dining room table, she left a note.
  144. I WAS THERE. DON'T TRY TO FIND ME.
  145.  
  146. Beside the note, she laid the old spare key from the ch?teau's woodshed.
  147.  
  148. Sophie! Langdon's voice intruded. Stop! Stop!
  149. Emerging from the memory, Sophie slammed on the brakes, skidding to a halt. What? What happened?!
  150. Langdon pointed down the long street before them.
  151. When she saw it, Sophie's blood went cold. A hundred yards ahead, the intersection was blocked by a couple of DCPJ police cars, parked askew, their purpose obvious. They've sealed off Avenue Gabriel!
  152. Langdon gave a grim sigh. I take it the embassy is off-limits this evening?
  153. Down the street, the two DCPJ officers who stood beside their cars were now staring in their direction, apparently curious about the headlights that had halted so abruptly up the street from them.
  154. Okay, Sophie, turn around very slowly.
  155. Putting the SmartCar in reverse, she performed a composed three-point turn and reversed her direction. As she drove away, she heard the sound of squealing tires behind them. Sirens blared to life.
  156. Cursing, Sophie slammed down the accelerator.
  157.  
  158. CHAPTER 33
  159.  
  160. Sophie's SmartCar tore through the diplomatic quarter, weaving past embassies and consulates, finally racing out a side street and taking a right turn back onto the massive thoroughfare of Champs-Elys?es.
  161. Langdon sat white-knuckled in the passenger seat, twisted backward, scanning behind them for any signs of the police. He suddenly wished he had not decided to run. You didn't, he reminded himself. Sophie had made the decision for him when she threw the GPS dot out the bathroom window. Now, as they sped away from the embassy, serpentining through sparse traffic on Champs-Elys?es, Langdon felt his options deteriorating. Although Sophie seemed to have lost the police, at least for the moment, Langdon doubted their luck would hold for long.
  162. Behind the wheel Sophie was fishing in her sweater pocket. She removed a small metal object and held it out for him. Robert, you'd better have a look at this. This is what my grandfather left me behind Madonna of the Rocks.
  163. Feeling a shiver of anticipation, Langdon took the object and examined it. It was heavy and shaped like a cruciform. His first instinct was that he was holding a funeral pieu—a miniature version of a memorial spike designed to be stuck into the ground at a gravesite. But then he noted the shaft protruding from the cruciform was prismatic and triangular. The shaft was also pockmarked with hundreds of tiny hexagons that appeared to be finely tooled and scattered at random.
  164. It's a laser-cut key, Sophie told him. Those hexagons are read by an electric eye.
  165. A key? Langdon had never seen anything like it.
  166. Look at the other side, she said, changing lanes and sailing through an intersection.
  167. When Langdon turned the key, he felt his jaw drop. There, intricately embossed on the center of the cross, was a stylized fleur-de-lis with the initials P.S.! Sophie, he said, this is the seal I told you about! The official device of the Priory of Sion.
  168. She nodded. As I told you, I saw the key a long time ago. He told me never to speak of it again.
  169. Langdon's eyes were still riveted on the embossed key. Its high-tech tooling and age-old symbolism exuded an eerie fusion of ancient and modern worlds.
  170. He told me the key opened a box where he kept many secrets.
  171. Langdon felt a chill to imagine what kind of secrets a man like Jacques Saunière might keep. What an ancient brotherhood was doing with a futuristic key, Langdon had no idea. The Priory existed for the sole purpose of protecting a secret. A secret of incredible power. Could this key have something to do with it? The thought was overwhelming. Do you know what it opens?
  172. Sophie looked disappointed. I was hoping you knew.
  173. Langdon remained silent as he turned the cruciform in his hand, examining it.
  174. It looks Christian, Sophie pressed.
  175. Langdon was not so sure about that. The head of this key was not the traditional long-stemmed Christian cross but rather was a square cross—with four arms of equal length—which predated Christianity by fifteen hundred years. This kind of cross carried none of the Christian connotations of crucifixion associated with the longer-stemmed Latin Cross, originated by Romans as a torture device. Langdon was always surprised how few Christians who gazed upon the crucifix realized their symbol's violent history was reflected in its very name: cross and crucifix came from the Latin verb cruciare—to torture.
  176. Sophie, he said, all I can tell you is that equal-armed crosses like this one are considered peaceful crosses. Their square configurations make them impractical for use in crucifixion, and their balanced vertical and horizontal elements convey a natural union of male and female, making them symbolically consistent with Priory philosophy.
  177. She gave him a weary look. You have no idea, do you?
  178. Langdon frowned. Not a clue.
  179. Okay, we have to get off the road. Sophie checked her rearview mirror. We need a safe place to figure out what that key opens.
  180. Langdon thought longingly of his comfortable room at the Ritz. Obviously, that was not an option. How about my hosts at the American University of Paris?
  181. Too obvious. Fache will check with them.
  182. You must know people. You live here.
  183. Fache will run my phone and e-mail records, talk to my coworkers. My contacts are compromised, and finding a hotel is no good because they all require identification.
  184. Langdon wondered again if he might have been better off taking his chances letting Fache arrest him at the Louvre. Let's call the embassy. I can explain the situation and have the embassy send someone to meet us somewhere.
  185. Meet us? Sophie turned and stared at him as if he were crazy. Robert, you're dreaming. Your embassy has no jurisdiction except on their own property. Sending someone to retrieve us would be considered aiding a fugitive of the French government. It won't happen. If you walk into your embassy and request temporary asylum, that's one thing, but asking them to take action against French law enforcement in the field? She shook her head. Call your embassy right now, and they are going to tell you to avoid further damage and turn yourself over to Fache. Then they'll promise to pursue diplomatic channels to get you a fair trial. She gazed up the line of elegant storefronts on Champs-Elys?es. How much cash do you have?
  186. Langdon checked his wallet. A hundred dollars. A few euro. Why?
  187. Credit cards?
  188. Of course.
  189. As Sophie accelerated, Langdon sensed she was formulating a plan. Dead ahead, at the end of Champs-Elys?es, stood the Arc de Triomphe—Napoleon's 164-foot-tall tribute to his own military potency—encircled by France's largest rotary, a nine-lane behemoth.
  190. Sophie's eyes were on the rearview mirror again as they approached the rotary. We lost them for the time being, she said, but we won't last another five minutes if we stay in this car.
  191. So steal a different one, Langdon mused, now that we're criminals. What are you going to do?
  192. Sophie gunned the SmartCar into the rotary. Trust me.
  193. Langdon made no response. Trust had not gotten him very far this evening. Pulling back the sleeve of his jacket, he checked his watch—a vintage, collector's-edition Mickey Mouse wristwatch that had been a gift from his parents on his tenth birthday. Although its juvenile dial often drew odd looks, Langdon had never owned any other watch; Disney animations had been his first introduction to the magic of form and color, and Mickey now served as Langdon's daily reminder to stay young at heart. At the moment, however, Mickey's arms were skewed at an awkward angle, indicating an equally awkward hour.
  194. 2:51 A.M.
  195. Interesting watch, Sophie said, glancing at his wrist and maneuvering the SmartCar around the wide, counterclockwise rotary.
  196. Long story, he said, pulling his sleeve back down.
  197. I imagine it would have to be. She gave him a quick smile and exited the rotary, heading due north, away from the city center. Barely making two green lights, she reached the third intersection and took a hard right onto Boulevard Malesherbes. They'd left the rich, tree-lined streets of the diplomatic neighborhood and plunged into a darker industrial neighborhood. Sophie took a quick left, and a moment later, Langdon realized where they were.
  198. Gare Saint-Lazare.
  199. Ahead of them, the glass-roofed train terminal resembled the awkward offspring of an airplane hangar and a greenhouse. European train stations never slept. Even at this hour, a half-dozen taxis idled near the main entrance. Vendors manned carts of sandwiches and mineral water while grungy kids in backpacks emerged from the station rubbing their eyes, looking around as if trying to remember what city they were in now. Up ahead on the street, a couple of city policemen stood on the curb giving directions to some confused tourists.
  200. Sophie pulled her SmartCar in behind the line of taxis and parked in a red zone despite plenty of legal parking across the street. Before Langdon could ask what was going on, she was out of the car. She hurried to the window of the taxi in front of them and began speaking to the driver.
  201. As Langdon got out of the SmartCar, he saw Sophie hand the taxi driver a big wad of cash. The taxi driver nodded and then, to Langdon's bewilderment, sped off without them.
  202. What happened? Langdon demanded, joining Sophie on the curb as the taxi disappeared.
  203. Sophie was already heading for the train station entrance. Come on. We're buying two tickets on the next train out of Paris.
  204. Langdon hurried along beside her. What had begun as a one-mile dash to the U.S. Embassy had now become a full-fledged evacuation from Paris. Langdon was liking this idea less and less.
  205.  
  206. CHAPTER 34
  207.  
  208. The driver who collected Bishop Aringarosa from Leonardo da Vinci International Airport pulled up in a small, unimpressive black Fiat sedan. Aringarosa recalled a day when all Vatican transports were big luxury cars that sported grille-plate medallions and flags emblazoned with the seal of the Holy See. Those days are gone. Vatican cars were now less ostentatious and almost always unmarked. The Vatican claimed this was to cut costs to better serve their dioceses, but Aringarosa suspected it was more of a security measure. The world had gone mad, and in many parts of Europe, advertising your love of Jesus Christ was like painting a bull's-eye on the roof of your car.
  209. Bundling his black cassock around himself, Aringarosa climbed into the back seat and settled in for the long drive to Castel Gandolfo. It would be the same ride he had taken five months ago.
  210. Last year's trip to Rome, he sighed. The longest night of my life.
  211. Five months ago, the Vatican had phoned to request Aringarosa's immediate presence in Rome. They offered no explanation. Your tickets are at the airport. The Holy See worked hard to retain a veil of mystery, even for its highest clergy.
  212. The mysterious summons, Aringarosa suspected, was probably a photo opportunity for the Pope and other Vatican officials to piggyback on Opus Dei's recent public success—the completion of their World Headquarters in New York City. Architectural Digest had called Opus Dei's building a shining beacon of Catholicism sublimely integrated with the modern landscape, and lately the Vatican seemed to be drawn to anything and everything that included the word modern.
  213. Aringarosa had no choice but to accept the invitation, albeit reluctantly. Not a fan of the current papal administration, Aringarosa, like most conservative clergy, had watched with grave concern as the new Pope settled into his first year in office. An unprecedented liberal, His Holiness had secured the papacy through one of the most controversial and unusual conclaves in Vatican history. Now, rather than being humbled by his unexpected rise to power, the Holy Father had wasted no time flexing all the muscle associated with the highest office in Christendom. Drawing on an unsettling tide of liberal support within the College of Cardinals, the Pope was now declaring his papal mission to be rejuvenation of Vatican doctrine and updating Catholicism into the third millennium.
  214. The translation, Aringarosa feared, was that the man was actually arrogant enough to think he could rewrite God's laws and win back the hearts of those who felt the demands of true Catholicism had become too inconvenient in a modern world.
  215. Aringarosa had been using all of his political sway—substantial considering the size of the Opus Dei constituency and their bankroll—to persuade the Pope and his advisers that softening the Church's laws was not only faithless and cowardly, but political suicide. He reminded them that previous tempering of Church law—the Vatican II fiasco—had left a devastating legacy: Church attendance was now lower than ever, donations were drying up, and there were not even enough Catholic priests to preside over their churches.
  216. People need structure and direction from the Church, Aringarosa insisted, not coddling and indulgence!
  217. On that night, months ago, as the Fiat had left the airport, Aringarosa was surprised to find himself heading not toward Vatican City but rather eastward up a sinuous mountain road. Where are we going? he had demanded of his driver.
  218. Alban Hills, the man replied. Your meeting is at Castel Gandolfo.
  219. The Pope's summer residence? Aringarosa had never been, nor had he ever desired to see it. In addition to being the Pope's summer vacation home, the sixteenth-century citadel housed the Specula Vaticana—the Vatican Observatory—one of the most advanced astronomical observatories in Europe. Aringarosa had never been comfortable with the Vatican's historical need to dabble in science. What was the rationale for fusing science and faith? Unbiased science could not possibly be performed by a man who possessed faith in God. Nor did faith have any need for physical confirmation of its beliefs.
  220. Nonetheless, there it is, he thought as Castel Gandolfo came into view, rising against a star-filled November sky. From the access road, Gandolfo resembled a great stone monster pondering a suicidal leap. Perched at the very edge of a cliff, the castle leaned out over the cradle of Italian civilization—the valley where the Curiazi and Orazi clans fought long before the founding of Rome.
  221. Even in silhouette, Gandolfo was a sight to behold—an impressive example of tiered, defensive architecture, echoing the potency of this dramatic cliffside setting. Sadly, Aringarosa now saw, the Vatican had ruined the building by constructing two huge aluminum telescope domes atop the roof, leaving this once dignified edifice looking like a proud warrior wearing a couple of party hats.
  222. When Aringarosa got out of the car, a young Jesuit priest hurried out and greeted him. Bishop, welcome. I am Father Mangano. An astronomer here.
  223. Good for you. Aringarosa grumbled his hello and followed his host into the castle's foyer—a wide-open space whose decor was a graceless blend of Renaissance art and astronomy images. Following his escort up the wide travertine marble staircase, Aringarosa saw signs for conference centers, science lecture halls, and tourist information services. It amazed him to think the Vatican was failing at every turn to provide coherent, stringent guidelines for spiritual growth and yet somehow still found time to give astrophysics lectures to tourists.
  224. Tell me, Aringarosa said to the young priest, when did the tail start wagging the dog?
  225. The priest gave him an odd look. Sir?
  226. Aringarosa waved it off, deciding not to launch into that particular offensive again this evening. The Vatican has gone mad. Like a lazy parent who found it easier to acquiesce to the whims of a spoiled child than to stand firm and teach values, the Church just kept softening at every turn, trying to reinvent itself to accommodate a culture gone astray.
  227. The top floor's corridor was wide, lushly appointed, and led in only one direction—toward a huge set of oak doors with a brass sign.
  228. BIBLIOTECA ASTRONOMICA
  229. Aringarosa had heard of this place—the Vatican's Astronomy Library—rumored to contain more than twenty-five thousand volumes, including rare works of Copernicus, Galileo, Kepler, Newton, and Secchi. Allegedly, it was also the place in which the Pope's highest officers held private meetings... those meetings they preferred not to hold within the walls of Vatican City.
  230. Approaching the door, Bishop Aringarosa would never have imagined the shocking news he was about to receive inside, or the deadly chain of events it would put into motion. It was not until an hour later, as he staggered from the meeting, that the devastating implications settled in. Six months from now! he had thought. God help us!
  231.  
  232. Now, seated in the Fiat, Bishop Aringarosa realized his fists were clenched just thinking about that first meeting. He released his grip and forced a slow inhalation, relaxing his muscles.
  233. Everything will be fine, he told himself as the Fiat wound higher into the mountains. Still, he wished his cell phone would ring. Why hasn't the Teacher called me? Silas should have the keystone by now.
  234. Trying to ease his nerves, the bishop meditated on the purple amethyst in his ring. Feeling the textures of the mitre-crozier appliqu? and the facets of the diamonds, he reminded himself that this ring was a symbol of power far less than that which he would soon attain.
  235.  
  236. CHAPTER 35
  237.  
  238. The inside of Gare Saint-Lazare looked like every other train station in Europe, a gaping indoor-outdoor cavern dotted with the usual suspects—homeless men holding cardboard signs, collections of bleary-eyed college kids sleeping on backpacks and zoning out to their portable MP3 players, and clusters of blue-clad baggage porters smoking cigarettes.
  239. Sophie raised her eyes to the enormous departure board overhead. The black and white tabs reshuffled, ruffling downward as the information refreshed. When the update was finished, Langdon eyed the offerings. The topmost listing read: LYON—RAPIDE—3:06
  240. I wish it left sooner, Sophie said, but Lyon will have to do. Sooner? Langdon checked his watch 2:59 A.M. The train left in seven minutes and they didn't even have tickets yet.
  241. Sophie guided Langdon toward the ticket window and said, Buy us two tickets with your credit card.
  242. I thought credit card usage could be traced by—
  243. Exactly.
  244. Langdon decided to stop trying to keep ahead of Sophie Neveu. Using his Visa card, he purchased two coach tickets to Lyon and handed them to Sophie.
  245. Sophie guided him out toward the tracks, where a familiar tone chimed overhead and a P.A. announcer gave the final boarding call for Lyon. Sixteen separate tracks spread out before them. In the distance to the right, at quay three, the train to Lyon was belching and wheezing in preparation for departure, but Sophie already had her arm through Langdon's and was guiding him in the exact opposite direction. They hurried through a side lobby, past an all-night cafe, and finally out a side door onto a quiet street on the west side of the station.
  246. A lone taxi sat idling by the doorway.
  247. The driver saw Sophie and flicked his lights.
  248. Sophie jumped in the back seat. Langdon got in after her.
  249. As the taxi pulled away from station, Sophie took out their newly purchased train tickets and tore them up.
  250. Langdon sighed. Seventy dollars well spent.
  251. It was not until their taxi had settled into a monotonous northbound hum on Rue de Clichy that Langdon felt they'd actually escaped. Out the window to his right, he could see Montmartre and the beautiful dome of Sacr?-Coeur. The image was interrupted by the flash of police lights sailing past them in the opposite direction.
  252. Langdon and Sophie ducked down as the sirens faded.
  253. Sophie had told the cab driver simply to head out of the city, and from her firmly set jaw, Langdon sensed she was trying to figure out their next move.
  254. Langdon examined the cruciform key again, holding it to the window, bringing it close to his eyes in an effort to find any markings on it that might indicate where the key had been made. In the intermittent glow of passing streetlights, he saw no markings except the Priory seal.
  255. It doesn't make sense, he finally said.
  256. Which part?
  257. That your grandfather would go to so much trouble to give you a key that you wouldn't know what to do with.
  258. I agree.
  259. Are you sure he didn't write anything else on the back of the painting?
  260. I searched the whole area. This is all there was. This key, wedged behind the painting. I saw the Priory seal, stuck the key in my pocket, then we left.
  261. Langdon frowned, peering now at the blunt end of the triangular shaft. Nothing. Squinting, he brought the key close to his eyes and examined the rim of the head. Nothing there either. I think this key was cleaned recently.
  262. Why?
  263. It smells like rubbing alcohol.
  264. She turned. I'm sorry?
  265. It smells like somebody polished it with a cleaner. Langdon held the key to his nose and sniffed. It's stronger on the other side. He flipped it over. Yes, it's alcohol-based, like it's been buffed with a cleaner or— Langdon stopped.
  266. What?
  267. He angled the key to the light and looked at the smooth surface on the broad arm of the cross. It seemed to shimmer in places... like it was wet. How well did you look at the back of this key before you put it in your pocket?
  268. What? Not well. I was in a hurry.
  269. Langdon turned to her. Do you still have the black light?
  270. Sophie reached in her pocket and produced the UV penlight. Langdon took it and switched it on, shining the beam on the back of the key.
  271. The back luminesced instantly. There was writing there. In penmanship that was hurried but legible.
  272. Well, Langdon said, smiling. I guess we know what the alcohol smell was.
  273.  
  274. Sophie stared in amazement at the purple writing on the back of the key.
  275. 24 Rue Haxo
  276.  
  277. An address! My grandfather wrote down an address!
  278. Where is this? Langdon asked.
  279. Sophie had no idea. Facing front again, she leaned forward and excitedly asked the driver, Connaissez-vous la Rue Haxo?
  280. The driver thought a moment and then nodded. He told Sophie it was out near the tennis stadium on the western outskirts of Paris. She asked him to take them there immediately.
  281. Fastest route is through Bois de Boulogne, the driver told her in French. Is that okay?
  282. Sophie frowned. She could think of far less scandalous routes, but tonight she was not going to be picky. Oui. We can shock the visiting American.
  283. Sophie looked back at the key and wondered what they would possibly find at 24 Rue Haxo. A church? Some kind of Priory headquarters?
  284. Her mind filled again with images of the secret ritual she had witnessed in the basement grotto ten years ago, and she heaved a long sigh. Robert, I have a lot of things to tell you. She paused, locking eyes with him as the taxi raced westward. But first I want you to tell me everything you know about this Priory of Sion.
  285.  
  286. CHAPTER 36
  287.  
  288. Outside the Salle des Etats, Bezu Fache was fuming as Louvre warden Grouard explained how Sophie and Langdon had disarmed him. Why didn't you just shoot the blessed painting!
  289. Captain? Lieutenant Collet loped toward them from the direction of the command post. Captain, I just heard. They located Agent Neveu's car.
  290. Did she make the embassy?
  291. No. Train station. Bought two tickets. Train just left.
  292. Fache waved off warden Grouard and led Collet to a nearby alcove, addressing him in hushed tones. What was the destination?
  293. Lyon.
  294. Probably a decoy. Fache exhaled, formulating a plan. Okay, alert the next station, have the train stopped and searched, just in case. Leave her car where it is and put plainclothes on watch in case they try to come back to it. Send men to search the streets around the station in case they fled on foot. Are buses running from the station?
  295. Not at this hour, sir. Only the taxi queue.
  296. Good. Question the drivers. See if they saw anything. Then contact the taxi company dispatcher with descriptions. I'm calling Interpol.
  297. Collet looked surprised. You're putting this on the wire?
  298. Fache regretted the potential embarrassment, but he saw no other choice.
  299. Close the net fast, and close it tight.
  300. The first hour was critical. Fugitives were predictable the first hour after escape. They always needed the same thing. Travel. Lodging. Cash. The Holy Trinity. Interpol had the power to make all three disappear in the blink of an eye. By broadcast-faxing photos of Langdon and Sophie to Paris travel authorities, hotels, and banks, Interpol would leave no options—no way to leave the city, no place to hide, and no way to withdraw cash without being recognized. Usually, fugitives panicked on the street and did something stupid. Stole a car. Robbed a store. Used a bank card in desperation. Whatever mistake they committed, they quickly made their whereabouts known to local authorities.
  301. Only Langdon, right? Collet said. You're not flagging Sophie Neveu. She's our own agent.
  302. Of course I'm flagging her! Fache snapped. What good is flagging Langdon if she can do all his dirty work? I plan to run Neveu's employment file—friends, family, personal contacts—anyone she might turn to for help. I don't know what she thinks she's doing out there, but it's going to cost her one hell of a lot more than her job!
  303. Do you want me on the phones or in the field?
  304. Field. Get over to the train station and coordinate the team. You've got the reins, but don't make a move without talking to me.
  305. Yes, sir. Collet ran out.
  306. Fache felt rigid as he stood in the alcove. Outside the window, the glass pyramid shone, its reflection rippling in the windswept pools. They slipped through my fingers. He told himself to relax.
  307. Even a trained field agent would be lucky to withstand the pressure that Interpol was about to apply.
  308. A female cryptologist and a schoolteacher?
  309. They wouldn't last till dawn.
  310.  
  311. CHAPTER 37
  312.  
  313. The heavily forested park known as the Bois de Boulogne was called many things, but the Parisian cognoscenti knew it as the Garden of Earthly Delights. The epithet, despite sounding flattering, was quite to the contrary. Anyone who had seen the lurid Bosch painting of the same name understood the jab; the painting, like the forest, was dark and twisted, a purgatory for freaks and fetishists. At night, the forest's winding lanes were lined with hundreds of glistening bodies for hire, earthly delights to satisfy one's deepest unspoken desires—male, female, and everything in between.
  314. As Langdon gathered his thoughts to tell Sophie about the Priory of Sion, their taxi passed through the wooded entrance to the park and began heading west on the cobblestone crossfare. Langdon was having trouble concentrating as a scattering of the park's nocturnal residents were already emerging from the shadows and flaunting their wares in the glare of the headlights. Ahead, two topless teenage girls shot smoldering gazes into the taxi. Beyond them, a well-oiled black man in a G-string turned and flexed his buttocks. Beside him, a gorgeous blond woman lifted her miniskirt to reveal that she was not, in fact, a woman.
  315. Heaven help me! Langdon turned his gaze back inside the cab and took a deep breath.
  316. Tell me about the Priory of Sion, Sophie said.
  317. Langdon nodded, unable to imagine a less congruous a backdrop for the legend he was about to tell. He wondered where to begin. The brotherhood's history spanned more than a millennium... an astonishing chronicle of secrets, blackmail, betrayal, and even brutal torture at the hands of an angry Pope.
  318. The Priory of Sion, he began, was founded in Jerusalem in 1099 by a French king named Godefroi de Bouillon, immediately after he had conquered the city.
  319. Sophie nodded, her eyes riveted on him.
  320. King Godefroi was allegedly the possessor of a powerful secret—a secret that had been in his family since the time of Christ. Fearing his secret might be lost when he died, he founded a secret brotherhood—the Priory of Sion—and charged them with protecting his secret by quietly passing it on from generation to generation. During their years in Jerusalem, the Priory learned of a stash of hidden documents buried beneath the ruins of Herod's temple, which had been built atop the earlier ruins of Solomon's Temple. These documents, they believed, corroborated Godefroi's powerful secret and were so explosive in nature that the Church would stop at nothing to get them. Sophie looked uncertain.
  321. The Priory vowed that no matter how long it took, these documents must be recovered from the rubble beneath the temple and protected forever, so the truth would never die. In order to retrieve the documents from within the ruins, the Priory created a military arm—a group of nine knights called the Order of the Poor Knights of Christ and the Temple of Solomon. Langdon paused. More commonly known as the Knights Templar.
  322. Sophie glanced up with a surprised look of recognition. Langdon had lectured often enough on the Knights Templar to know that almost everyone on earth had heard of them, at least abstractedly. For academics, the Templars' history was a precarious world where fact, lore, and misinformation had become so intertwined that extracting a pristine truth was almost impossible. Nowadays, Langdon hesitated even to mention the Knights Templar while lecturing because it invariably led to a barrage of convoluted inquiries into assorted conspiracy theories.
  323. Sophie already looked troubled. You're saying the Knights Templar were founded by the Priory of Sion to retrieve a collection of secret documents? I thought the Templars were created to protect the Holy Land.
  324. A common misconception. The idea of protection of pilgrims was the guise under which the Templars ran their mission. Their true goal in the Holy Land was to retrieve the documents from beneath the ruins of the temple.
  325. And did they find them?
  326. Langdon grinned. Nobody knows for sure, but the one thing on which all academics agree is this: The Knights discovered something down there in the ruins... something that made them wealthy and powerful beyond anyone's wildest imagination.
  327. Langdon quickly gave Sophie the standard academic sketch of the accepted Knights Templar history, explaining how the Knights were in the Holy Land during the Second Crusade and told King Baldwin II that they were there to protect Christian pilgrims on the roadways. Although unpaid and sworn to poverty, the Knights told the king they required basic shelter and requested his permission to take up residence in the stables under the ruins of the temple. King Baldwin granted the soldiers' request, and the Knights took up their meager residence inside the devastated shrine.
  328. The odd choice of lodging, Langdon explained, had been anything but random. The Knights believed the documents the Priory sought were buried deep under the ruins—beneath the Holy of Holies, a sacred chamber where God Himself was believed to reside. Literally, the very center of the Jewish faith. For almost a decade, the nine Knights lived in the ruins, excavating in total secrecy through solid rock.
  329. Sophie looked over. And you said they discovered something?
  330. They certainly did, Langdon said, explaining how it had taken nine years, but the Knights had finally found what they had been searching for. They took the treasure from the temple and traveled to Europe, where their influence seemed to solidify overnight.
  331. Nobody was certain whether the Knights had blackmailed the Vatican or whether the Church simply tried to buy the Knights' silence, but Pope Innocent II immediately issued an unprecedented papal bull that afforded the Knights Templar limitless power and declared them a law unto themselves—an autonomous army independent of all interference from kings and prelates, both religious and political.
  332. With their new carte blanche from the Vatican, the Knights Templar expanded at a staggering rate, both in numbers and political force, amassing vast estates in over a dozen countries. They began extending credit to bankrupt royals and charging interest in return, thereby establishing modern banking and broadening their wealth and influence still further.
  333. By the 1300s, the Vatican sanction had helped the Knights amass so much power that Pope Clement V decided that something had to be done. Working in concert with France's King Philippe IV, the Pope devised an ingeniously planned sting operation to quash the Templars and seize their treasure, thus taking control of the secrets held over the Vatican. In a military maneuver worthy of the CIA, Pope Clement issued secret sealed orders to be opened simultaneously by his soldiers all across Europe on Friday, October 13 of 1307.
  334. At dawn on the thirteenth, the documents were unsealed and their appalling contents revealed. Clement's letter claimed that God had visited him in a vision and warned him that the Knights Templar were heretics guilty of devil worship, homosexuality, defiling the cross, sodomy, and other blasphemous behavior. Pope Clement had been asked by God to cleanse the earth by rounding up all the Knights and torturing them until they confessed their crimes against God. Clement's Machiavellian operation came off with clockwork precision. On that day, countless Knights were captured, tortured mercilessly, and finally burned at the stake as heretics. Echoes of the tragedy still resonated in modern culture; to this day, Friday the thirteenth was considered unlucky.
  335. Sophie looked confused. The Knights Templar were obliterated? I thought fraternities of Templars still exist today?
  336. They do, under a variety of names. Despite Clement's false charges and best efforts to eradicate them, the Knights had powerful allies, and some managed to escape the Vatican purges. The Templars' potent treasure trove of documents, which had apparently been their source of power, was Clement's true objective, but it slipped through his fingers. The documents had long since been entrusted to the Templars' shadowy architects, the Priory of Sion, whose veil of secrecy had kept them safely out of range of the Vatican's onslaught. As the Vatican closed in, the Priory smuggled their documents from a Paris preceptory by night onto Templar ships in La Rochelle.
  337. Where did the documents go?
  338. Langdon shrugged. That mystery's answer is known only to the Priory of Sion. Because the documents remain the source of constant investigation and speculation even today, they are believed to have been moved and rehidden several times. Current speculation places the documents somewhere in the United Kingdom.
  339. Sophie looked uneasy.
  340. For a thousand years, Langdon continued, legends of this secret have been passed on. The entire collection of documents, its power, and the secret it reveals have become known by a single name—Sangreal. Hundreds of books have been written about it, and few mysteries have caused as much interest among historians as the Sangreal.
  341. The Sangreal? Does the word have anything to do with the French word sang or Spanish sangre—meaning 'blood'?
  342. Langdon nodded. Blood was the backbone of the Sangreal, and yet not in the way Sophie probably imagined. The legend is complicated, but the important thing to remember is that the Priory guards the proof, and is purportedly awaiting the right moment in history to reveal the truth.
  343. What truth? What secret could possibly be that powerful?
  344. Langdon took a deep breath and gazed out at the underbelly of Paris leering in the shadows. Sophie, the word Sangreal is an ancient word. It has evolved over the years into another term... a more modern name. He paused. When I tell you its modern name, you'll realize you already know a lot about it. In fact, almost everyone on earth has heard the story of the Sangreal.
  345. Sophie looked skeptical. I've never heard of it.
  346. Sure you have. Langdon smiled. You're just used to hearing it called by the name 'Holy Grail.'
  347.  
  348. CHAPTER 38
  349.  
  350. Sophie scrutinized Langdon in the back of the taxi. He's joking. The Holy Grail?
  351. Langdon nodded, his expression serious. Holy Grail is the literal meaning of Sangreal. The phrase derives from the French Sangraal, which evolved to Sangreal, and was eventually split into two words, San Greal.
  352. Holy Grail. Sophie was surprised she had not spotted the linguistic ties immediately. Even so, Langdon's claim still made no sense to her. I thought the Holy Grail was a cup. You just told me the Sangreal is a collection of documents that reveals some dark secret.
  353. Yes, but the Sangreal documents are only half of the Holy Grail treasure. They are buried with the Grail itself... and reveal its true meaning. The documents gave the Knights Templar so much power because the pages revealed the true nature of the Grail.
  354. The true nature of the Grail? Sophie felt even more lost now. The Holy Grail, she had thought, was the cup that Jesus drank from at the Last Supper and with which Joseph of Arimathea later caught His blood at the crucifixion. The Holy Grail is the Cup of Christ, she said. How much simpler could it be?
  355. Sophie, Langdon whispered, leaning toward her now, according to the Priory of Sion, the Holy Grail is not a cup at all. They claim the Grail legend—that of a chalice—is actually an ingeniously conceived allegory. That is, that the Grail story uses the chalice as a metaphor for something else, something far more powerful. He paused. Something that fits perfectly with everything your grandfather has been trying to tell us tonight, including all his symbologic references to the sacred feminine.
  356. Still unsure, Sophie sensed in Langdon's patient smile that he empathized with her confusion, and yet his eyes remained earnest. But if the Holy Grail is not a cup, she asked, what is it?
  357. Langdon had known this question was coming, and yet he still felt uncertain exactly how to tell her. If he did not present the answer in the proper historical background, Sophie would be left with a vacant air of bewilderment—the exact expression Langdon had seen on his own editor's face a few months ago after Langdon handed him a draft of the manuscript he was working on.
  358. This manuscript claims what? his editor had choked, setting down his wineglass and staring across his half-eaten power lunch. You can't be serious.
  359. Serious enough to have spent a year researching it.
  360. Prominent New York editor Jonas Faukman tugged nervously at his goatee. Faukman no doubt had heard some wild book ideas in his illustrious career, but this one seemed to have left the man flabbergasted.
  361. Robert, Faukman finally said, don't get me wrong. I love your work, and we've had a great run together. But if I agree to publish an idea like this, I'll have people picketing outside my office for months. Besides, it will kill your reputation. You're a Harvard historian, for God's sake, not a pop schlockmeister looking for a quick buck. Where could you possibly find enough credible evidence to support a theory like this?
  362. With a quiet smile Langdon pulled a piece of paper from the pocket of his tweed coat and handed it to Faukman. The page listed a bibliography of over fifty titles—books by well-known historians, some contemporary, some centuries old—many of them academic bestsellers. All the book titles suggested the same premise Langdon had just proposed. As Faukman read down the list, he looked like a man who had just discovered the earth was actually flat. I know some of these authors. They're... real historians!
  363. Langdon grinned. As you can see, Jonas, this is not only my theory. It's been around for a long time. I'm simply building on it. No book has yet explored the legend of the Holy Grail from a symbologic angle. The iconographic evidence I'm finding to support the theory is, well, staggeringly persuasive.
  364. Faukman was still staring at the list. My God, one of these books was written by Sir Leigh Teabing—a British Royal Historian.
  365. Teabing has spent much of his life studying the Holy Grail. I've met with him. He was actually a big part of my inspiration. He's a believer, Jonas, along with all of the others on that list.
  366. You're telling me all of these historians actually believe... Faukman swallowed, apparently unable to say the words.
  367. Langdon grinned again. The Holy Grail is arguably the most sought-after treasure in human history. The Grail has spawned legends, wars, and lifelong quests. Does it make sense that it is merely a cup? If so, then certainly other relics should generate similar or greater interest—the Crown of Thorns, the True Cross of the Crucifixion, the Titulus—and yet, they do not. Throughout history, the Holy Grail has been the most special. Langdon grinned. Now you know why.
  368. Faukman was still shaking his head. But with all these books written about it, why isn't this theory more widely known?
  369. These books can't possibly compete with centuries of established history, especially when that history is endorsed by the ultimate bestseller of all time.
  370. Faukman's eyes went wide. Don't tell me Harry Potter is actually about the Holy Grail.
  371. I was referring to the Bible.
  372. Faukman cringed. I knew that.
  373.  
  374. Laissez-le! Sophie's shouts cut the air inside the taxi. Put it down!
  375. Langdon jumped as Sophie leaned forward over the seat and yelled at the taxi driver. Langdon could see the driver was clutching his radio mouthpiece and speaking into it.
  376. Sophie turned now and plunged her hand into the pocket of Langdon's tweed jacket. Before Langdon knew what had happened, she had yanked out the pistol, swung it around, and was pressing it to the back of the driver's head. The driver instantly dropped his radio, raising his one free hand overhead.
  377. Sophie! Langdon choked. What the hell—
  378. Arr?tez! Sophie commanded the driver.
  379. Trembling, the driver obeyed, stopping the car and putting it in park.
  380. It was then that Langdon heard the metallic voice of the taxi company's dispatcher coming from the dashboard. ...qui s'appette Agent Sophie Neveu... the radio crackled. Et un Am?ricain, Robert Langdon...
  381. Langdon's muscles turned rigid. They found us already?
  382. Descendez, Sophie demanded.
  383. The trembling driver kept his arms over his head as he got out of his taxi and took several steps backward.
  384. Sophie had rolled down her window and now aimed the gun outside at the bewildered cabbie. Robert, she said quietly, take the wheel. You're driving.
  385. Langdon was not about to argue with a woman wielding a gun. He climbed out of the car and jumped back in behind the wheel. The driver was yelling curses, his arms still raised over his head.
  386. Robert, Sophie said from the back seat, I trust you've seen enough of our magic forest?
  387. He nodded. Plenty.
  388. Good. Drive us out of here.
  389. Langdon looked down at the car's controls and hesitated. Shit. He groped for the stick shift and clutch. Sophie? Maybe you—
  390. Go! she yelled.
  391. Outside, several hookers were walking over to see what was going on. One woman was placing a call on her cell phone. Langdon depressed the clutch and jostled the stick into what he hoped was first gear. He touched the accelerator, testing the gas.
  392. Langdon popped the clutch. The tires howled as the taxi leapt forward, fishtailing wildly and sending the gathering crowd diving for cover. The woman with the cell phone leapt into the woods, only narrowly avoiding being run down.
  393. Doucement! Sophie said, as the car lurched down the road. What are you doing?
  394. I tried to warn you, he shouted over the sound of gnashing gears. I drive an automatic!
  395.  
  396. CHAPTER 39
  397.  
  398. Although the spartan room in the brownstone on Rue La Bruyère had witnessed a lot of suffering, Silas doubted anything could match the anguish now gripping his pale body. I was deceived. Everything is lost.
  399. Silas had been tricked. The brothers had lied, choosing death instead of revealing their true secret. Silas did not have the strength to call the Teacher. Not only had Silas killed the only four people who knew where the keystone was hidden, he had killed a nun inside Saint-Sulpice. She was working against God! She scorned the work of Opus Dei!
  400. A crime of impulse, the woman's death complicated matters greatly. Bishop Aringarosa had placed the phone call that got Silas into Saint-Sulpice; what would the abb? think when he discovered the nun was dead? Although Silas had placed her back in her bed, the wound on her head was obvious. Silas had attempted to replace the broken tiles in the floor, but that damage too was obvious. They would know someone had been there.
  401. Silas had planned to hide within Opus Dei when his task here was complete. Bishop Aringarosa will protect me. Silas could imagine no more blissful existence than a life of meditation and prayer deep within the walls of Opus Dei's headquarters in New York City. He would never again set foot outside. Everything he needed was within that sanctuary. Nobody will miss me. Unfortunately, Silas knew, a prominent man like Bishop Aringarosa could not disappear so easily.
  402. I have endangered the bishop. Silas gazed blankly at the floor and pondered taking his own life. After all, it had been Aringarosa who gave Silas life in the first place... in that small rectory in Spain, educating him, giving him purpose.
  403. My friend, Aringarosa had told him, you were born an albino. Do not let others shame you for this. Do you not understand how special this makes you? Were you not aware that Noah himself was an albino?
  404. Noah of the Ark? Silas had never heard this.
  405. Aringarosa was smiling. Indeed, Noah of the Ark. An albino. Like you, he had skin white like an angel. Consider this. Noah saved all of life on the planet. You are destined for great things, Silas. The Lord has freed you for a reason. You have your calling. The Lord needs your help to do His work.
  406. Over time, Silas learned to see himself in a new light. I am pure. White. Beautiful. Like an angel.
  407. At the moment, though, in his room at the residence hall, it was his father's disappointed voice that whispered to him from the past.
  408. Tu es un d?sastre. Un spectre.
  409. Kneeling on the wooden floor, Silas prayed for forgiveness. Then, stripping off his robe, he reached again for the Discipline.
  410.  
  411. CHAPTER 40
  412.  
  413. Struggling with the gear shift, Langdon managed to maneuver the hijacked taxi to the far side of the Bois de Boulogne while stalling only twice. Unfortunately, the inherent humor in the situation was overshadowed by the taxi dispatcher repeatedly hailing their cab over the radio.
  414. Voiture cinq-six-trois. O? ?tes-vous? R?pondez!
  415. When Langdon reached the exit of the park, he swallowed his machismo and jammed on the brakes. You'd better drive.
  416. Sophie looked relieved as she jumped behind the wheel. Within seconds she had the car humming smoothly westward along All?e de Longchamp, leaving the Garden of Earthly Delights behind.
  417. Which way is Rue Haxo? Langdon asked, watching Sophie edge the speedometer over a hundred kilometers an hour.
  418. Sophie's eyes remained focused on the road. The cab driver said it's adjacent to the Roland Garros tennis stadium. I know that area.
  419. Langdon pulled the heavy key from his pocket again, feeling the weight in his palm. He sensed it was an object of enormous consequence. Quite possibly the key to his own freedom.
  420. Earlier, while telling Sophie about the Knights Templar, Langdon had realized that this key, in addition to having the Priory seal embossed on it, possessed a more subtle tie to the Priory of Sion. The equal-armed cruciform was symbolic of balance and harmony but also of the Knights Templar. Everyone had seen the paintings of Knights Templar wearing white tunics emblazoned with red equal-armed crosses. Granted, the arms of the Templar cross were slightly flared at the ends, but they were still of equal length.
  421. A square cross. Just like the one on this key.
  422. Langdon felt his imagination starting to run wild as he fantasized about what they might find. The Holy Grail. He almost laughed out loud at the absurdity of it. The Grail was believed to be somewhere in England, buried in a hidden chamber beneath one of the many Templar churches, where it had been hidden since at least 1500.
  423. The era of Grand Master Da Vinci.
  424. The Priory, in order to keep their powerful documents safe, had been forced to move them many times in the early centuries. Historians now suspected as many as six different Grail relocations since its arrival in Europe from Jerusalem. The last Grail sighting had been in 1447 when numerous eyewitnesses described a fire that had broken out and almost engulfed the documents before they were carried to safety in four huge chests that each required six men to carry. After that, nobody claimed to see the Grail ever again. All that remained were occasional whisperings that it was hidden in Great Britain, the land of King Arthur and the Knights of the Round Table.
  425. Wherever it was, two important facts remained:
  426. Leonardo knew where the Grail resided during his lifetime.
  427. That hiding place had probably not changed to this day.
  428. For this reason, Grail enthusiasts still pored over Da Vinci's art and diaries in hopes of unearthing a hidden clue as to the Grail's current location. Some claimed the mountainous backdrop in Madonna of the Rocks matched the topography of a series of cave-ridden hills in Scotland. Others insisted that the suspicious placement of disciples in The Last Supper was some kind of code. Still others claimed that X rays of the Mona Lisa revealed she originally had been painted wearing a lapis lazuli pendant of Isis—a detail Da Vinci purportedly later decided to paint over. Langdon had never seen any evidence of the pendant, nor could he imagine how it could possibly reveal the Holy Grail, and yet Grail aficionados still discussed it ad nauseum on Internet bulletin boards and worldwide-web chat rooms.
  429. Everyone loves a conspiracy.
  430. And the conspiracies kept coming. Most recently, of course, had been the earthshaking discovery that Da Vinci's famed Adoration of the Magi was hiding a dark secret beneath its layers of paint. Italian art diagnostician Maurizio Seracini had unveiled the unsettling truth, which the New York Times Magazine carried prominently in a story titled The Leonardo Cover-Up.
  431. Seracini had revealed beyond any doubt that while the Adoration's gray-green sketched underdrawing was indeed Da Vinci's work, the painting itself was not. The truth was that some anonymous painter had filled in Da Vinci's sketch like a paint-by-numbers years after Da Vinci's death. Far more troubling, however, was what lay beneath the impostor's paint. Photographs taken with infrared reflectography and X ray suggested that this rogue painter, while filling in Da Vinci's sketched study, had made suspicious departures from the underdrawing... as if to subvert Da Vinci's true intention. Whatever the true nature of the underdrawing, it had yet to be made public. Even so, embarrassed officials at Florence's Uffizi Gallery immediately banished the painting to a warehouse across the street. Visitors at the gallery's Leonardo Room now found a misleading and unapologetic plaque where the Adoration once hung.
  432. THIS WORK IS UNDERGOING
  433. DIAGNOSTIC TESTS IN PREPARATION
  434. FOR RESTORATION.
  435.  
  436. In the bizarre underworld of modern Grail seekers, Leonardo da Vinci remained the quest's great enigma. His artwork seemed bursting to tell a secret, and yet whatever it was remained hidden, perhaps beneath a layer of paint, perhaps enciphered in plain view, or perhaps nowhere at all. Maybe Da Vinci's plethora of tantalizing clues was nothing but an empty promise left behind to frustrate the curious and bring a smirk to the face of his knowing Mona Lisa.
  437. Is it possible, Sophie asked, drawing Langdon back, that the key you're holding unlocks the hiding place of the Holy Grail?
  438. Langdon's laugh sounded forced, even to him. I really can't imagine. Besides, the Grail is believed to be hidden in the United Kingdom somewhere, not France. He gave her the quick history.
  439. But the Grail seems the only rational conclusion, she insisted. We have an extremely secure key, stamped with the Priory of Sion seal, delivered to us by a member of the Priory of Sion—a brotherhood which, you just told me, are guardians of the Holy Grail.
  440. Langdon knew her contention was logical, and yet intuitively he could not possibly accept it. Rumors existed that the Priory had vowed someday to bring the Grail back to France to a final resting place, but certainly no historical evidence existed to suggest that this indeed had happened. Even if the Priory had managed to bring the Grail back to France, the address 24 Rue Haxo near a tennis stadium hardly sounded like a noble final resting place. Sophie, I really don't see how this key could have anything to do with the Grail.
  441. Because the Grail is supposed to be in England?
  442. Not only that. The location of the Holy Grail is one of the best kept secrets in history. Priory members wait decades proving themselves trustworthy before being elevated to the highest echelons of the fraternity and learning where the Grail is. That secret is protected by an intricate system of compartmentalized knowledge, and although the Priory brotherhood is very large, only four members at any given time know where the Grail is hidden—the Grand Master and his three s?n?chaux. The probability of your grandfather being one of those four top people is very slim.
  443. My grandfather was one of them, Sophie thought, pressing down on the accelerator. She had an image stamped in her memory that confirmed her grandfather's status within the brotherhood beyond any doubt.
  444. And even if your grandfather were in the upper echelon, he would never be allowed to reveal anything to anyone outside the brotherhood. It is inconceivable that he would bring you into the inner circle.
  445. I've already been there, Sophie thought, picturing the ritual in the basement. She wondered if this were the moment to tell Langdon what she had witnessed that night in the Normandy ch?teau. For ten years now, simple shame had kept her from telling a soul. Just thinking about it, she shuddered. Sirens howled somewhere in the distance, and she felt a thickening shroud of fatigue settling over her.
  446. There! Langdon said, feeling excited to see the huge complex of the Roland Garros tennis stadium looming ahead.
  447. Sophie snaked her way toward the stadium. After several passes, they located the intersection of Rue Haxo and turned onto it, driving in the direction of the lower numbers. The road became more industrial, lined with businesses.
  448. We need number twenty-four, Langdon told himself, realizing he was secretly scanning the horizon for the spires of a church. Don't be ridiculous. A forgotten Templar church in this neighborhood?
  449. There it is, Sophie exclaimed, pointing.
  450. Langdon's eyes followed to the structure ahead.
  451. What in the world?
  452. The building was modern. A squat citadel with a giant, neon equal-armed cross emblazoned atop its facade. Beneath the cross were the words:
  453. DEPOSITORY BANK OF ZURICH
  454. Langdon was thankful not to have shared his Templar church hopes with Sophie. A career hazard of symbologists was a tendency to extract hidden meaning from situations that had none. In this case, Langdon had entirely forgotten that the peaceful, equal-armed cross had been adopted as the perfect symbol for the flag of neutral Switzerland.
  455. At least the mystery was solved.
  456. Sophie and Langdon were holding the key to a Swiss bank deposit box.
  457.  
  458. CHAPTER 41
  459.  
  460. Outside Castel Gandolfo, an updraft of mountain air gushed over the top of the cliff and across the high bluff, sending a chill through Bishop Aringarosa as he stepped from the Fiat. I should have worn more than this cassock, he thought, fighting the reflex to shiver. The last thing he needed to appear tonight was weak or fearful.
  461. The castle was dark save the windows at the very top of the building, which glowed ominously. The library, Aringarosa thought. They are awake and waiting. He ducked his head against the wind and continued on without so much as a glance toward the observatory domes.
  462. The priest who greeted him at the door looked sleepy. He was the same priest who had greeted Aringarosa five months ago, albeit tonight he did so with much less hospitality. We were worried about you, Bishop, the priest said, checking his watch and looking more perturbed than worried.
  463. My apologies. Airlines are so unreliable these days.
  464. The priest mumbled something inaudible and then said, They are waiting upstairs. I will escort you up.
  465. The library was a vast square room with dark wood from floor to ceiling. On all sides, towering bookcases burgeoned with volumes. The floor was amber marble with black basalt trim, a handsome reminder that this building had once been a palace.
  466. Welcome, Bishop, a man's voice said from across the room.
  467. Aringarosa tried to see who had spoken, but the lights were ridiculously low—much lower than they had been on his first visit, when everything was ablaze. The night of stark awakening. Tonight, these men sat in the shadows, as if they were somehow ashamed of what was about to transpire.
  468. Aringarosa entered slowly, regally even. He could see the shapes of three men at a long table on the far side of the room. The silhouette of the man in the middle was immediately recognizable—the obese Secretariat Vaticana, overlord of all legal matters within Vatican City. The other two were high-ranking Italian cardinals.
  469. Aringarosa crossed the library toward them. My humble apologies for the hour. We're on different time zones. You must be tired.
  470. Not at all, the secretariat said, his hands folded on his enormous belly. We are grateful you have come so far. The least we can do is be awake to meet you. Can we offer you some coffee or refreshments?
  471. I'd prefer we don't pretend this is a social visit. I have another plane to catch. Shall we get to business?
  472. Of course, the secretariat said. You have acted more quickly than we imagined.
  473. Have I?
  474. You still have a month.
  475. You made your concerns known five months ago, Aringarosa said. Why should I wait?
  476. Indeed. We are very pleased with your expediency.
  477. Aringarosa's eyes traveled the length of the long table to a large black briefcase. Is that what I requested?
  478. It is. The secretariat sounded uneasy. Although, I must admit, we are concerned with the request. It seems quite...
  479. Dangerous, one of the cardinals finished. Are you certain we cannot wire it to you somewhere? The sum is exorbitant.
  480. Freedom is expensive. I have no concerns for my own safety. God is with me.
  481. The men actually looked doubtful.
  482. The funds are exactly as I requested?
  483. The secretariat nodded. Large-denomination bearer bonds drawn on the Vatican Bank. Negotiable as cash anywhere in the world.
  484. Aringarosa walked to the end of the table and opened the briefcase. Inside were two thick stacks of bonds, each embossed with the Vatican seal and the title PORTATORE, making the bonds redeemable to whoever was holding them.
  485. The secretariat looked tense. I must say, Bishop, all of us would feel less apprehensive if these funds were in cash.
  486. I could not lift that much cash, Aringarosa thought, closing the case. Bonds are negotiable as cash. You said so yourself.
  487. The cardinals exchanged uneasy looks, and finally one said, Yes, but these bonds are traceable directly to the Vatican Bank.
  488. Aringarosa smiled inwardly. That was precisely the reason the Teacher suggested Aringarosa get the money in Vatican Bank bonds. It served as insurance. We are all in this together now. This is a perfectly legal transaction, Aringarosa defended. Opus Dei is a personal prelature of Vatican City, and His Holiness can disperse monies however he sees fit. No law has been broken here.
  489. True, and yet... The secretariat leaned forward and his chair creaked under the burden. We have no knowledge of what you intend to do with these funds, and if it is in any way illegal...
  490. Considering what you are asking of me, Aringarosa countered, what I do with this money is not your concern.
  491. There was a long silence.
  492. They know I'm right, Aringarosa thought. Now, I imagine you have something for me to sign?
  493. They all jumped, eagerly pushing the paper toward him, as if they wished he would simply leave.
  494. Aringarosa eyed the sheet before him. It bore the papal seal. This is identical to the copy you sent me?
  495. Exactly.
  496. Aringarosa was surprised how little emotion he felt as he signed the document. The three men present, however, seemed to sigh in relief.
  497. Thank you, Bishop, the secretariat said. Your service to the Church will never be forgotten.
  498. Aringarosa picked up the briefcase, sensing promise and authority in its weight. The four men looked at one another for a moment as if there were something more to say, but apparently there was not. Aringarosa turned and headed for the door.
  499. Bishop? one of the cardinals called out as Aringarosa reached the threshold.
  500. Aringarosa paused, turning. Yes?
  501. Where will you go from here?
  502. Aringarosa sensed the query was more spiritual than geographical, and yet he had no intention of discussing morality at this hour. Paris, he said, and walked out the door.
  503.  
  504. CHAPTER 42
  505.  
  506. The Depository Bank of Zurich was a twenty-four-hour Geldschrank bank offering the full modern array of anonymous services in the tradition of the Swiss numbered account. Maintaining offices in Zurich, Kuala Lumpur, New York, and Paris, the bank had expanded its services in recent years to offer anonymous computer source code escrow services and faceless digitized backup.
  507. The bread and butter of its operation was by far its oldest and simplest offering—the anonyme Lager—blind drop services, otherwise known as anonymous safe-deposit boxes. Clients wishing to store anything from stock certificates to valuable paintings could deposit their belongings anonymously, through a series of high-tech veils of privacy, withdrawing items at any time, also in total anonymity.
  508. As Sophie pulled the taxi to a stop in front of their destination, Langdon gazed out at the building's uncompromising architecture and sensed the Depository Bank of Zurich was a firm with little sense of humor. The building was a windowless rectangle that seemed to be forged entirely of dull steel. Resembling an enormous metal brick, the edifice sat back from the road with a fifteen-foot-tall, neon, equilateral cross glowing over its facade.
  509. Switzerland's reputation for secrecy in banking had become one of the country's most lucrative exports. Facilities like this had become controversial in the art community because they provided a perfect place for art thieves to hide stolen goods, for years if necessary, until the heat was off. Because deposits were protected from police inspection by privacy laws and were attached to numbered accounts rather than people's names, thieves could rest easily knowing their stolen goods were safe and could never be traced to them.
  510. Sophie stopped the taxi at an imposing gate that blocked the bank's driveway—a cement-lined ramp that descended beneath the building. A video camera overhead was aimed directly at them, and Langdon had the feeling that this camera, unlike those at the Louvre, was authentic.
  511. Sophie rolled down the window and surveyed the electronic podium on the driver's side. An LCD screen provided directions in seven languages. Topping the list was English.
  512. INSERT KEY.
  513.  
  514. Sophie took the gold laser-pocked key from her pocket and turned her attention back to the podium. Below the screen was a triangular hole.
  515. Something tells me it will fit, Langdon said.
  516. Sophie aligned the key's triangular shaft with the hole and inserted it, sliding it in until the entire shaft had disappeared. This key apparently required no turning. Instantly, the gate began to swing open. Sophie took her foot off the brake and coasted down to a second gate and podium. Behind her, the first gate closed, trapping them like a ship in a lock.
  517. Langdon disliked the constricted sensation. Let's hope this second gate works too.
  518. This second podium bore familiar directions.
  519. INSERT KEY.
  520.  
  521. When Sophie inserted the key, the second gate immediately opened. Moments later they were winding down the ramp into the belly of the structure.
  522. The private garage was small and dim, with spaces for about a dozen cars. At the far end, Langdon spied the building's main entrance. A red carpet stretched across the cement floor, welcoming visitors to a huge door that appeared to be forged of solid metal.
  523. Talk about mixed messages, Langdon thought. Welcome and keep out.
  524. Sophie pulled the taxi into a parking space near the entrance and killed the engine. You'd better leave the gun here.
  525. With pleasure, Langdon thought, sliding the pistol under the seat.
  526. Sophie and Langdon got out and walked up the red carpet toward the slab of steel. The door had no handle, but on the wall beside it was another triangular keyhole. No directions were posted this time.
  527. Keeps out the slow learners, Langdon said.
  528. Sophie laughed, looking nervous. Here we go. She stuck the key in the hole, and the door swung inward with a low hum. Exchanging glances, Sophie and Langdon entered. The door shut with a thud behind them.
  529. The foyer of the Depository Bank of Zurich employed as imposing a decor as any Langdon had ever seen. Where most banks were content with the usual polished marble and granite, this one had opted for wall-to-wall metal and rivets.
  530. Who's their decorator? Langdon wondered. Allied Steel?
  531. Sophie looked equally intimidated as her eyes scanned the lobby.
  532. The gray metal was everywhere—the floor, walls, counters, doors, even the lobby chairs appeared to be fashioned of molded iron. Nonetheless, the effect was impressive. The message was clear: You are walking into a vault.
  533. A large man behind the counter glanced up as they entered. He turned off the small television he was watching and greeted them with a pleasant smile. Despite his enormous muscles and visible sidearm, his diction chimed with the polished courtesy of a Swiss bellhop.
  534. Bonsoir, he said. How may I help you?
  535. The dual-language greeting was the newest hospitality trick of the European host. It presumed nothing and opened the door for the guest to reply in whichever language was more comfortable.
  536. Sophie replied with neither. She simply laid the gold key on the counter in front of the man.
  537. The man glanced down and immediately stood straighter. Of course. Your elevator is at the end of the hall. I will alert someone that you are on your way.
  538. Sophie nodded and took her key back. Which floor?
  539. The man gave her an odd look. Your key instructs the elevator which floor.
  540. She smiled. Ah, yes.
  541.  
  542. The guard watched as the two newcomers made their way to the elevators, inserted their key, boarded the lift, and disappeared. As soon as the door had closed, he grabbed the phone. He was not calling to alert anyone of their arrival; there was no need for that. A vault greeter already had been alerted automatically when the client's key was inserted outside in the entry gate.
  543. Instead, the guard was calling the bank's night manager. As the line rang, the guard switched the television back on and stared at it. The news story he had been watching was just ending. It didn't matter. He got another look at the two faces on the television.
  544. The manager answered. Oui?
  545. We have a situation down here.
  546. What's happening? the manager demanded.
  547. The French police are tracking two fugitives tonight.
  548. So?
  549. Both of them just walked into our bank.
  550. The manager cursed quietly. Okay. I'll contact Monsieur Vernet immediately.
  551. The guard then hung up and placed a second call. This one to Interpol.
  552.  
  553. Langdon was surprised to feel the elevator dropping rather than climbing. He had no idea how many floors they had descended beneath the Depository Bank of Zurich before the door finally opened. He didn't care. He was happy to be out of the elevator.
  554. Displaying impressive alacrity, a host was already standing there to greet them. He was elderly and pleasant, wearing a neatly pressed flannel suit that made him look oddly out of place—an old-world banker in a high-tech world.
  555. Bonsoir, the man said. Good evening. Would you be so kind as to follow me, s'il vous plait? Without waiting for a response, he spun on his heel and strode briskly down a narrow metal corridor.
  556. Langdon walked with Sophie down a series of corridors, past several large rooms filled with blinking mainframe computers.
  557. Voici, their host said, arriving at a steel door and opening it for them. Here you are.
  558. Langdon and Sophie stepped into another world. The small room before them looked like a lavish sitting room at a fine hotel. Gone were the metal and rivets, replaced with oriental carpets, dark oak furniture, and cushioned chairs. On the broad desk in the middle of the room, two crystal glasses sat beside an opened bottle of Perrier, its bubbles still fizzing. A pewter pot of coffee steamed beside it.
  559. Clockwork, Langdon thought. Leave it to the Swiss.
  560. The man gave a perceptive smile. I sense this is your first visit to us?
  561. Sophie hesitated and then nodded.
  562. Understood. Keys are often passed on as inheritance, and our first-time users are invariably uncertain of the protocol. He motioned to the table of drinks. This room is yours as long as you care to use it.
  563. You say keys are sometimes inherited? Sophie asked.
  564. Indeed. Your key is like a Swiss numbered account, which are often willed through generations. On our gold accounts, the shortest safety-deposit box lease is fifty years. Paid in advance. So we see plenty of family turnover.
  565. Langdon stared. Did you say fifty years?
  566. At a minimum, their host replied. Of course, you can purchase much longer leases, but barring further arrangements, if there is no activity on an account for fifty years, the contents of that safe-deposit box are automatically destroyed. Shall I run through the process of accessing your box?
  567. Sophie nodded. Please.
  568. Their host swept an arm across the luxurious salon. This is your private viewing room. Once I leave the room, you may spend all the time you need in here to review and modify the contents of your safe-deposit box, which arrives... over here. He walked them to the far wall where a wide conveyor belt entered the room in a graceful curve, vaguely resembling a baggage claim carousel. You insert your key in that slot there.... The man pointed to a large electronic podium facing the conveyor belt. The podium had a familiar triangular hole. Once the computer confirms the markings on your key, you enter your account number, and your safe-deposit box will be retrieved robotically from the vault below for your inspection. When you are finished with your box, you place it back on the conveyor belt, insert your key again, and the process is reversed. Because everything is automated, your privacy is guaranteed, even from the staff of this bank. If you need anything at all, simply press the call button on the table in the center of the room.
  569. Sophie was about to ask a question when a telephone rang. The man looked puzzled and embarrassed. Excuse me, please. He walked over to the phone, which was sitting on the table beside the coffee and Perrier.
  570. Oui? he answered.
  571. His brow furrowed as he listened to the caller. Oui... oui... d'accord. He hung up, and gave them an uneasy smile. I'm sorry, I must leave you now. Make yourselves at home. He moved quickly toward the door.
  572. Excuse me, Sophie called. Could you clarify something before you go? You mentioned that we enter an account number?
  573. The man paused at the door, looking pale. But of course. Like most Swiss banks, our safe-deposit boxes are attached to a number, not a name. You have a key and a personal account number known only to you. Your key is only half of your identification. Your personal account number is the other half. Otherwise, if you lost your key, anyone could use it.
  574. Sophie hesitated. And if my benefactor gave me no account number?
  575. The banker's heart pounded. Then you obviously have no business here! He gave them a calm smile. I will ask someone to help you. He will be in shortly.
  576. Leaving, the banker closed the door behind him and twisted a heavy lock, sealing them inside.
  577.  
  578. Across town, Collet was standing in the Gare du Nord train terminal when his phone rang.
  579. It was Fache. Interpol got a tip, he said. Forget the train. Langdon and Neveu just walked into the Paris branch of the Depository Bank of Zurich. I want your men over there right away.
  580. Any leads yet on what Saunière was trying to tell Agent Neveu and Robert Langdon?
  581. Fache's tone was cold. If you arrest them, Lieutenant Collet, then I can ask them personally.
  582. Collet took the hint. Twenty-four Rue Haxo. Right away, Captain. He hung up and radioed his men.
  583.  
  584. CHAPTER 43
  585.  
  586. Andr? Vernet—president of the Paris branch of the Depository Bank of Zurich—lived in a lavish flat above the bank. Despite his plush accommodations, he had always dreamed of owning a riverside apartment on L'lle Saint-Louis, where he could rub shoulders with the true cognoscenti, rather than here, where he simply met the filthy rich.
  587. When I retire, Vernet told himself, I will fill my cellar with rare Bordeaux, adorn my salon with a Fragonard and perhaps a Boucher, and spend my days hunting for antique furniture and rare books in the Quartier Latin.
  588. Tonight, Vernet had been awake only six and a half minutes. Even so, as he hurried through the bank's underground corridor, he looked as if his personal tailor and hairdresser had polished him to a fine sheen. Impeccably dressed in a silk suit, Vernet sprayed some breath spray in his mouth and tightened his tie as he walked. No stranger to being awoken to attend to his international clients arriving from different time zones, Vernet modeled his sleep habits after the Maasai warriors—the African tribe famous for their ability to rise from the deepest sleep to a state of total battle readiness in a matter of seconds.
  589. Battle ready, Vernet thought, fearing the comparison might be uncharacteristically apt tonight. The arrival of a gold key client always required an extra flurry of attention, but the arrival of a gold key client who was wanted by the Judicial Police would be an extremely delicate matter. The bank had enough battles with law enforcement over the privacy rights of their clients without proof that some of them were criminals.
  590. Five minutes, Vernet told himself. I need these people out of my bank before the police arrive.
  591. If he moved quickly, this impending disaster could be deftly sidestepped. Vernet could tell the police that the fugitives in question had indeed walked into his bank as reported, but because they were not clients and had no account number, they were turned away. He wished the damned watchman had not called Interpol. Discretion was apparently not part of the vocabulary of a 15-euro-per-hour watchman.
  592. Stopping at the doorway, he took a deep breath and loosened his muscles. Then, forcing a balmy smile, he unlocked the door and swirled into the room like a warm breeze.
  593. Good evening, he said, his eyes finding his clients. I am Andr? Vernet. How can I be of serv— The rest of the sentence lodged somewhere beneath his Adam's apple. The woman before him was as unexpected a visitor as Vernet had ever had.
  594.  
  595. I'm sorry, do we know each other? Sophie asked. She did not recognize the banker, but he for a moment looked as if he'd seen a ghost.
  596. No..., the bank president fumbled. I don't... believe so. Our services are anonymous. He exhaled and forced a calm smile. My assistant tells me you have a gold key but no account number? Might I ask how you came by this key?
  597. My grandfather gave it to me, Sophie replied, watching the man closely. His uneasiness seemed more evident now.
  598. Really? Your grandfather gave you the key but failed to give you the account number?
  599. I don't think he had time, Sophie said. He was murdered tonight.
  600. Her words sent the man staggering backward. Jacques Saunière is dead? he demanded, his eyes filling with horror. But... how?!
  601. Now it was Sophie who reeled, numb with shock. You knew my grandfather?
  602. Banker Andr? Vernet looked equally astounded, steadying himself by leaning on an end table. Jacques and I were dear friends. When did this happen?
  603. Earlier this evening. Inside the Louvre.
  604. Vernet walked to a deep leather chair and sank into it. I need to ask you both a very important question. He glanced up at Langdon and then back to Sophie. Did either of you have anything to do with his death?
  605. No! Sophie declared. Absolutely not.
  606. Vernet's face was grim, and he paused, pondering. Your pictures are being circulated by Interpol. This is how I recognized you. You're wanted for a murder.
  607. Sophie slumped. Fache ran an Interpol broadcast already? It seemed the captain was more motivated than Sophie had anticipated. She quickly told Vernet who Langdon was and what had happened inside the Louvre tonight.
  608. Vernet looked amazed. And as your grandfather was dying, he left you a message telling you to find Mr. Langdon?
  609. Yes. And this key. Sophie laid the gold key on the coffee table in front of Vernet, placing the Priory seal face down.
  610. Vernet glanced at the key but made no move to touch it. He left you only this key? Nothing else? No slip of paper?
  611. Sophie knew she had been in a hurry inside the Louvre, but she was certain she had seen nothing else behind Madonna of the Rocks. No. Just the key.
  612. Vernet gave a helpless sigh. I'm afraid every key is electronically paired with a ten-digit account number that functions as a password. Without that number, your key is worthless.
  613. Ten digits. Sophie reluctantly calculated the cryptographic odds. Over ten billion possible choices. Even if she could bring in DCPJ's most powerful parallel processing computers, she still would need weeks to break the code. Certainly, monsieur, considering the circumstances, you can help us.
  614. I'm sorry. I truly can do nothing. Clients select their own account numbers via a secure terminal, meaning account numbers are known only to the client and computer. This is one way we ensure anonymity. And the safety of our employees.
  615. Sophie understood. Convenience stores did the same thing. EMPLOYEES DO NOT HAVE KEYS TO THE SAFE. This bank obviously did not want to risk someone stealing a key and then holding an employee hostage for the account number.
  616. Sophie sat down beside Langdon, glanced down at the key and then up at Vernet. Do you have any idea what my grandfather is storing in your bank?
  617. None whatsoever. That is the definition of a Geldschrank bank.
  618. Monsieur Vernet, she pressed, our time tonight is short. I am going to be very direct if I may. She reached out to the gold key and flipped it over, watching the man's eyes as she revealed the Priory of Sion seal. Does the symbol on this key mean anything to you?
  619. Vernet glanced down at the fleur-de-lis seal and made no reaction. No, but many of our clients emboss corporate logos or initials onto their keys.
  620. Sophie sighed, still watching him carefully. This seal is the symbol of a secret society known as the Priory of Sion.
  621. Vernet again showed no reaction. I know nothing of this. Your grandfather was a friend, but we spoke mostly of business. The man adjusted his tie, looking nervous now.
  622. Monsieur Vernet, Sophie pressed, her tone firm. My grandfather called me tonight and told me he and I were in grave danger. He said he had to give me something. He gave me a key to your bank. Now he is dead. Anything you can tell us would be helpful.
  623. Vernet broke a sweat. We need to get out of the building. I'm afraid the police will arrive shortly. My watchman felt obliged to call Interpol.
  624. Sophie had feared as much. She took one last shot. My grandfather said he needed to tell me the truth about my family. Does that mean anything to you?
  625. Mademoiselle, your family died in a car accident when you were young. I'm sorry. I know your grandfather loved you very much. He mentioned to me several times how much it pained him that you two had fallen out of touch.
  626. Sophie was uncertain how to respond.
  627. Langdon asked, Do the contents of this account have anything to do with the Sangreal?
  628. Vernet gave him an odd look. I have no idea what that is. Just then, Vernet's cell phone rang, and he snatched it off his belt. Oui? He listened a moment, his expression one of surprise and growing concern. La police? Si rapidement? He cursed, gave some quick directions in French, and said he would be up to the lobby in a minute.
  629. Hanging up the phone, he turned back to Sophie. The police have responded far more quickly than usual. They are arriving as we speak.
  630. Sophie had no intention of leaving empty-handed. Tell them we came and went already. If they want to search the bank, demand a search warrant. That will take them time.
  631. Listen, Vernet said, Jacques was a friend, and my bank does not need this kind of press, so for those two reasons, I have no intention of allowing this arrest to be made on my premises. Give me a minute and I will see what I can do to help you leave the bank undetected. Beyond that, I cannot get involved. He stood up and hurried for the door. Stay here. I'll make arrangements and be right back.
  632. But the safe-deposit box, Sophie declared. We can't just leave.
  633. There's nothing I can do, Vernet said, hurrying out the door. I'm sorry.
  634. Sophie stared after him a moment, wondering if maybe the account number was buried in one of the countless letters and packages her grandfather had sent her over the years and which she had left unopened.
  635. Langdon stood suddenly, and Sophie sensed an unexpected glimmer of contentment in his eyes.
  636. Robert? You're smiling.
  637. Your grandfather was a genius.
  638. I'm sorry?
  639. Ten digits?
  640. Sophie had no idea what he was talking about.
  641. The account number, he said, a familiar lopsided grin now craning his face. I'm pretty sure he left it for us after all.
  642. Where?
  643. Langdon produced the printout of the crime scene photo and spread it out on the coffee table. Sophie needed only to read the first line to know Langdon was correct.
  644. 13-3-2-21-1-1-8-5
  645. O, Draconian devil!
  646. Oh, lame saint!
  647. P.S. Find Robert Langdon
  648.  
  649. CHAPTER 44
  650.  
  651. Ten digits, Sophie said, her cryptologic senses tingling as she studied the printout.
  652. 13-3-2-21-1-1-8-5
  653. Grand-père wrote his account number on the Louvre floor!
  654. When Sophie had first seen the scrambled Fibonacci sequence on the parquet, she had assumed its sole purpose was to encourage DCPJ to call in their cryptographers and get Sophie involved. Later, she realized the numbers were also a clue as to how to decipher the other lines—a sequence out of order... a numeric anagram. Now, utterly amazed, she saw the numbers had a more important meaning still. They were almost certainly the final key to opening her grandfather's mysterious safe-deposit box.
  655. He was the master of double-entendres, Sophie said, turning to Langdon. He loved anything with multiple layers of meaning. Codes within codes.
  656. Langdon was already moving toward the electronic podium near the conveyor belt. Sophie grabbed the computer printout and followed.
  657. The podium had a keypad similar to that of a bank ATM terminal. The screen displayed the bank's cruciform logo. Beside the keypad was a triangular hole. Sophie wasted no time inserting the shaft of her key into the hole.
  658. The screen refreshed instantly.
  659. ACCOUNT NUMBER: _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _
  660.  
  661. The cursor blinked. Waiting.
  662. Ten digits. Sophie read the numbers off the printout, and Langdon typed them in.
  663. ACCOUNT NUMBER: 1332211185
  664.  
  665. When he had typed the last digit, the screen refreshed again. A message in several languages appeared. English was on top.
  666. CAUTION:
  667. Before you strike the enter key, please check the accuracy of your account number.
  668. For your own security, if the computer does not recognize your account number, this system will automatically shut down.
  669.  
  670. Fonction terminer, Sophie said, frowning. Looks like we only get one try. Standard ATM machines allowed users three attempts to type a PIN before confiscating their bank card. This was obviously no ordinary cash machine.
  671. The number looks right, Langdon confirmed, carefully checking what they had typed and comparing it to the printout. He motioned to the ENTER key. Fire away.
  672. Sophie extended her index finger toward the keypad, but hesitated, an odd thought now hitting her.
  673. Go ahead, Langdon urged. Vernet will be back soon.
  674. No. She pulled her hand away. This isn't the right account number.
  675. Of course it is! Ten digits. What else would it be?
  676. It's too random.
  677. Too random? Langdon could not have disagreed more. Every bank advised its customers to choose PINs at random so nobody could guess them. Certainly clients here would be advised to choose their account numbers at random.
  678. Sophie deleted everything she had just typed in and looked up at Langdon, her gaze self-assured. It's far too coincidental that this supposedly random account number could be rearranged to form the Fibonacci sequence.
  679. Langdon realized she had a point. Earlier, Sophie had rearranged this account number into the Fibonacci sequence. What were the odds of being able to do that?
  680. Sophie was at the keypad again, entering a different number, as if from memory. Moreover, with my grandfather's love of symbolism and codes, it seems to follow that he would have chosen an account number that had meaning to him, something he could easily remember. She finished typing the entry and gave a sly smile. Something that appeared random... but was not. Langdon looked at the screen.
  681. ACCOUNT NUMBER: 1123581321
  682.  
  683. It took him an instant, but when Langdon spotted it, he knew she was right.
  684. The Fibonacci sequence.
  685. 1-1-2-3-5-8-13-21
  686. When the Fibonacci sequence was melded into a single ten-digit number, it became virtually unrecognizable. Easy to remember, and yet seemingly random. A brilliant ten-digit code that Saunière would never forget. Furthermore, it perfectly explained why the scrambled numbers on the Louvre floor could be rearranged to form the famous progression.
  687. Sophie reached down and pressed the ENTER key.
  688. Nothing happened.
  689. At least nothing they could detect.
  690.  
  691. At that moment, beneath them, in the bank's cavernous subterranean vault, a robotic claw sprang to life. Sliding on a double-axis transport system attached to the ceiling, the claw headed off in search of the proper coordinates. On the cement floor below, hundreds of identical plastic crates lay aligned on an enormous grid... like rows of small coffins in an underground crypt.
  692. Whirring to a stop over the correct spot on the floor, the claw dropped down, an electric eye confirming the bar code on the box. Then, with computer precision, the claw grasped the heavy handle and hoisted the crate vertically. New gears engaged, and the claw transported the box to the far side of the vault, coming to a stop over a stationary conveyor belt.
  693. Gently now, the retrieval arm set down the crate and retracted.
  694. Once the arm was clear, the conveyor belt whirred to life....
  695.  
  696. Upstairs, Sophie and Langdon exhaled in relief to see the conveyor belt move. Standing beside the belt, they felt like weary travelers at baggage claim awaiting a mysterious piece of luggage whose contents were unknown.
  697. The conveyor belt entered the room on their right through a narrow slit beneath a retractable door. The metal door slid up, and a huge plastic box appeared, emerging from the depths on the inclined conveyor belt. The box was black, heavy molded plastic, and far larger than she imagined. It looked like an air-freight pet transport crate without any airholes.
  698. The box coasted to a stop directly in front of them.
  699. Langdon and Sophie stood there, silent, staring at the mysterious container.
  700. Like everything else about this bank, this crate was industrial—metal clasps, a bar code sticker on top, and molded heavy-duty handle. Sophie thought it looked like a giant toolbox.
  701. Wasting no time, Sophie unhooked the two buckles facing her. Then she glanced over at Langdon. Together, they raised the heavy lid and let it fall back.
  702. Stepping forward, they peered down into the crate.
  703. At first glance, Sophie thought the crate was empty. Then she saw something. Sitting at the bottom of the crate. A lone item.
  704. The polished wooden box was about the size of a shoebox and had ornate hinges. The wood was a lustrous deep purple with a strong grain. Rosewood, Sophie realized. Her grandfather's favorite. The lid bore a beautiful inlaid design of a rose. She and Langdon exchanged puzzled looks. Sophie leaned in and grabbed the box, lifting it out.
  705. My God, it's heavy!
  706. She carried it gingerly to a large receiving table and set it down. Langdon stood beside her, both of them staring at the small treasure chest her grandfather apparently had sent them to retrieve.
  707. Langdon stared in wonderment at the lid's hand-carved inlay—a five-petal rose. He had seen this type of rose many times. The five-petal rose, he whispered, is a Priory symbol for the Holy Grail.
  708. Sophie turned and looked at him. Langdon could see what she was thinking, and he was thinking it too. The dimensions of the box, the apparent weight of its contents, and a Priory symbol for the Grail all seemed to imply one unfathomable conclusion. The Cup of Christ is in this wooden box. Langdon again told himself it was impossible.
  709. It's a perfect size, Sophie whispered, to hold... a chalice.
  710. It can't be a chalice.
  711. Sophie pulled the box toward her across the table, preparing to open it. As she moved it, though, something unexpected happened. The box let out an odd gurgling sound.
  712. Langdon did a double take. There's liquid inside?
  713. Sophie looked equally confused. Did you just hear...?
  714. Langdon nodded, lost. Liquid.
  715. Reaching forward, Sophie slowly unhooked the clasp and raised the lid.
  716. The object inside was unlike anything Langdon had ever seen. One thing was immediately clear to both of them, however. This was definitely not the Cup of Christ.
  717.  
  718. CHAPTER 45
  719.  
  720. The police are blocking the street, Andr? Vernet said, walking into the waiting room. Getting you out will be difficult. As he closed the door behind him, Vernet saw the heavy-duty plastic case on the conveyor belt and halted in his tracks. My God! They accessed Saunière's account?
  721. Sophie and Langdon were at the table, huddling over what looked to be a large wooden jewelry box. Sophie immediately closed the lid and looked up. We had the account number after all, she said.
  722. Vernet was speechless. This changed everything. He respectfully diverted his eyes from the box and tried to figure out his next move. I have to get them out of the bank! But with the police already having set up a roadblock, Vernet could imagine only one way to do that. Mademoiselle Neveu, if I can get you safely out of the bank, will you be taking the item with you or returning it to the vault before you leave?
  723. Sophie glanced at Langdon and then back to Vernet. We need to take it.
  724. Vernet nodded. Very well. Then whatever the item is, I suggest you wrap it in your jacket as we move through the hallways. I would prefer nobody else see it.
  725. As Langdon shed his jacket, Vernet hurried over to the conveyor belt, closed the now empty crate, and typed a series of simple commands. The conveyor belt began moving again, carrying the plastic container back down to the vault. Pulling the gold key from the podium, he handed it to Sophie.
  726. This way please. Hurry.
  727. When they reached the rear loading dock, Vernet could see the flash of police lights filtering through the underground garage. He frowned. They were probably blocking the ramp. Am I really going to try to pull this off? He was sweating now.
  728. Vernet motioned to one of the bank's small armored trucks. Transport s?r was another service offered by the Depository Bank of Zurich.
  729. Get in the cargo hold, he said, heaving open the massive rear door and motioning to the glistening steel compartment. I'll be right back.
  730. As Sophie and Langdon climbed in, Vernet hurried across the loading dock to the dock overseer's office, let himself in, collected the keys for the truck, and found a driver's uniform jacket and cap. Shedding his own suit coat and tie, he began to put on the driver's jacket. Reconsidering, he donned a shoulder holster beneath the uniform. On his way out, he grabbed a driver's pistol from the rack, put in a clip, and stuffed it in the holster, buttoning his uniform over it. Returning to the truck, Vernet pulled the driver's cap down low and peered in at Sophie and Langdon, who were standing inside the empty steel box.
  731. You'll want this on, Vernet said, reaching inside and flicking a wall switch to illuminate the lone courtesy bulb on the hold's ceiling. And you'd better sit down. Not a sound on our way out the gate.
  732. Sophie and Langdon sat down on the metal floor. Langdon cradled the treasure wadded in his tweed jacket. Swinging the heavy doors closed, Vernet locked them inside. Then he got in behind the wheel and revved the engine.
  733. As the armored truck lumbered toward the top of the ramp, Vernet could feel the sweat already collecting beneath his driver's cap. He could see there were far more police lights in front than he had imagined. As the truck powered up the ramp, the interior gate swung inward to let him pass. Vernet advanced and waited while the gate behind him closed before pulling forward and tripping the next sensor. The second gate opened, and the exit beckoned.
  734. Except for the police car blocking the top of the ramp.
  735. Vernet dabbed his brow and pulled forward.
  736. A lanky officer stepped out and waved him to a stop a few meters from the roadblock. Four patrol cars were parked out front.
  737. Vernet stopped. Pulling his driver's cap down farther, he effected as rough a facade as his cultured upbringing would allow. Not budging from behind the wheel, he opened the door and gazed down at the agent, whose face was stern and sallow.
  738. Qu'est-ce qui se passe? Vernet asked, his tone rough.
  739. Je suis J?rome Collet, the agent said. Lieutenant Police Judiciaire. He motioned to the truck's cargo hold. Qu'est-ce qu'ily a l? dedans?
  740. Hell if I know, Vernet replied in crude French. I'm only a driver.
  741. Collet looked unimpressed. We're looking for two criminals.
  742. Vernet laughed. Then you came to the right spot. Some of these bastards I drive for have so much money they must be criminals.
  743. The agent held up a passport picture of Robert Langdon. Was this man in your bank tonight?
  744. Vernet shrugged. No clue. I'm a dock rat. They don't let us anywhere near the clients. You need to go in and ask the front desk.
  745. Your bank is demanding a search warrant before we can enter.
  746. Vernet put on a disgusted look. Administrators. Don't get me started.
  747. Open your truck, please. Collet motioned toward the cargo hold.
  748. Vernet stared at the agent and forced an obnoxious laugh. Open the truck? You think I have keys? You think they trust us? You should see the crap wages I get paid.
  749. The agent's head tilted to one side, his skepticism evident. You're telling me you don't have keys to your own truck?
  750. Vernet shook his head. Not the cargo area. Ignition only. These trucks get sealed by overseers on the loading dock. Then the truck sits in dock while someone drives the cargo keys to the drop-off. Once we get the call that the cargo keys are with the recipient, then I get the okay to drive. Not a second before. I never know what the hell I'm lugging.
  751. When was this truck sealed?
  752. Must have been hours ago. I'm driving all the way up to St. Thurial tonight. Cargo keys are already up there.
  753. The agent made no response, his eyes probing as if trying to read Vernet's mind.
  754. A drop of sweat was preparing to slide down Vernet's nose. You mind? he said, wiping his nose with his sleeve and motioning to the police car blocking his way. I'm on a tight schedule.
  755. Do all the drivers wear Rolexes? the agent asked, pointing to Vernet's wrist.
  756. Vernet glanced down and saw the glistening band of his absurdly expensive watch peeking out from beneath the sleeve of his jacket. Merde. This piece of shit? Bought it for twenty euro from a Taiwanese street vendor in St. Germain des Pr?s. I'll sell it to you for forty.
  757. The agent paused and finally stepped aside. No thanks. Have a safe trip.
  758. Vernet did not breathe again until the truck was a good fifty meters down the street. And now he had another problem. His cargo. Where do I take them?
  759.  
  760. CHAPTER 46
  761.  
  762. Silas lay prone on the canvas mat in his room, allowing the lash wounds on his back to clot in the air. Tonight's second session with the Discipline had left him dizzy and weak. He had yet to remove the cilice belt, and he could feel the blood trickling down his inner thigh. Still, he could not justify removing the strap.
  763. I have failed the Church.
  764. Far worse, I have failed the bishop.
  765. Tonight was supposed to be Bishop Aringarosa's salvation. Five months ago, the bishop had returned from a meeting at the Vatican Observatory, where he had learned something that left him deeply changed. Depressed for weeks, Aringarosa had finally shared the news with Silas.
  766. But this is impossible! Silas had cried out. I cannot accept it!
  767. It is true, Aringarosa said. Unthinkable, but true. In only six months.
  768. The bishop's words terrified Silas. He prayed for deliverance, and even in those dark days, his trust in God and The Way never wavered. It was only a month later that the clouds parted miraculously and the light of possibility shone through.
  769. Divine intervention, Aringarosa had called it.
  770. The bishop had seemed hopeful for the first time. Silas, he whispered, God has bestowed upon us an opportunity to protect The Way. Our battle, like all battles, will take sacrifice. Will you be a soldier of God?
  771. Silas fell to his knees before Bishop Aringarosa—the man who had given him a new life—and he said, I am a lamb of God. Shepherd me as your heart commands.
  772. When Aringarosa described the opportunity that had presented itself, Silas knew it could only be the hand of God at work. Miraculous fate! Aringarosa put Silas in contact with the man who had proposed the plan—a man who called himself the Teacher. Although the Teacher and Silas never met face-to-face, each time they spoke by phone, Silas was awed, both by the profundity of the Teacher's faith and by the scope of his power. The Teacher seemed to be a man who knew all, a man with eyes and ears in all places. How the Teacher gathered his information, Silas did not know, but Aringarosa had placed enormous trust in the Teacher, and he had told Silas to do the same. Do as the Teacher commands you, the bishop told Silas. And we will be victorious.
  773. Victorious. Silas now gazed at the bare floor and feared victory had eluded them. The Teacher had been tricked. The keystone was a devious dead end. And with the deception, all hope had vanished.
  774. Silas wished he could call Bishop Aringarosa and warn him, but the Teacher had removed all their lines of direct communication tonight. For our safety.
  775. Finally, overcoming enormous trepidation, Silas crawled to his feet and found his robe, which lay on the floor. He dug his cell phone from the pocket. Hanging his head in shame, he dialed.
  776. Teacher, he whispered, all is lost. Silas truthfully told the man how he had been tricked.
  777. You lose your faith too quickly, the Teacher replied. I have just received news. Most unexpected and welcome. The secret lives. Jacques Saunière transferred information before he died. I will call you soon. Our work tonight is not yet done.
  778.  
  779. CHAPTER 47
  780.  
  781. Riding inside the dimly lit cargo hold of the armored truck was like being transported inside a cell for solitary confinement. Langdon fought the all too familiar anxiety that haunted him in confined spaces. Vernet said he would take us a safe distance out of the city. Where? How far?
  782. Langdon's legs had gotten stiff from sitting cross-legged on the metal floor, and he shifted his position, wincing to feel the blood pouring back into his lower body. In his arms, he still clutched the bizarre treasure they had extricated from the bank.
  783. I think we're on the highway now, Sophie whispered.
  784. Langdon sensed the same thing. The truck, after an unnerving pause atop the bank ramp, had moved on, snaking left and right for a minute or two, and was now accelerating to what felt like top speed. Beneath them, the bulletproof tires hummed on smooth pavement. Forcing his attention to the rosewood box in his arms, Langdon laid the precious bundle on the floor, unwrapped his jacket, and extracted the box, pulling it toward him. Sophie shifted her position so they were sitting side by side. Langdon suddenly felt like they were two kids huddled over a Christmas present.
  785. In contrast to the warm colors of the rosewood box, the inlaid rose had been crafted of a pale wood, probably ash, which shone clearly in the dim light. The Rose. Entire armies and religions had been built on this symbol, as had secret societies. The Rosicrucians. The Knights of the Rosy Cross.
  786. Go ahead, Sophie said. Open it.
  787. Langdon took a deep breath. Reaching for the lid, he stole one more admiring glance at the intricate woodwork and then, unhooking the clasp, he opened the lid, revealing the object within.
  788. Langdon had harbored several fantasies about what they might find inside this box, but clearly he had been wrong on every account. Nestled snugly inside the box's heavily padded interior of crimson silk lay an object Langdon could not even begin to comprehend.
  789. Crafted of polished white marble, it was a stone cylinder approximately the dimensions of a tennis ball can. More complicated than a simple column of stone, however, the cylinder appeared to have been assembled in many pieces. Six doughnut-sized disks of marble had been stacked and affixed to one another within a delicate brass framework. It looked like some kind of tubular, multiwheeled kaleidoscope. Each end of the cylinder was affixed with an end cap, also marble, making it impossible to see inside. Having heard liquid within, Langdon assumed the cylinder was hollow.
  790. As mystifying as the construction of the cylinder was, however, it was the engravings around the tube's circumference that drew Langdon's primary focus. Each of the six disks had been carefully carved with the same unlikely series of letters—the entire alphabet. The lettered cylinder reminded Langdon of one of his childhood toys—a rod threaded with lettered tumblers that could be rotated to spell different words.
  791. Amazing, isn't it? Sophie whispered.
  792. Langdon glanced up. I don't know. What the hell is it?
  793. Now there was a glint in Sophie's eye. My grandfather used to craft these as a hobby. They were invented by Leonardo da Vinci.
  794. Even in the diffuse light, Sophie could see Langdon's surprise.
  795. Da Vinci? he muttered, looking again at the canister.
  796. Yes. It's called a cryptex. According to my grandfather, the blueprints come from one of Da Vinci's secret diaries.
  797. What is it for?
  798. Considering tonight's events, Sophie knew the answer might have some interesting implications. It's a vault, she said. For storing secret information.
  799. Langdon's eyes widened further.
  800. Sophie explained that creating models of Da Vinci's inventions was one of her grandfather's best-loved hobbies. A talented craftsman who spent hours in his wood and metal shop, Jacques Saunière enjoyed imitating master craftsmen—Faberg?, assorted cloisonne artisans, and the less artistic, but far more practical, Leonardo da Vinci.
  801. Even a cursory glance through Da Vinci's journals revealed why the luminary was as notorious for his lack of follow-through as he was famous for his brilliance. Da Vinci had drawn up blueprints for hundreds of inventions he had never built. One of Jacques Saunière's favorite pastimes was bringing Da Vinci's more obscure brainstorms to life—timepieces, water pumps, cryptexes, and even a fully articulated model of a medieval French knight, which now stood proudly on the desk in his office. Designed by Da Vinci in 1495 as an outgrowth of his earliest anatomy and kinesiology studies, the internal mechanism of the robot knight possessed accurate joints and tendons, and was designed to sit up, wave its arms, and move its head via a flexible neck while opening and closing an anatomically correct jaw. This armor-clad knight, Sophie had always believed, was the most beautiful object her grandfather had ever built... that was, until she had seen the cryptex in this rosewood box.
  802. He made me one of these when I was little, Sophie said. But I've never seen one so ornate and large.
  803. Langdon's eyes had never left the box. I've never heard of a cryptex.
  804. Sophie was not surprised. Most of Leonardo's unbuilt inventions had never been studied or even named. The term cryptex possibly had been her grandfather's creation, an apt title for this device that used the science of cryptology to protect information written on the contained scroll or codex.
  805. Da Vinci had been a cryptology pioneer, Sophie knew, although he was seldom given credit. Sophie's university instructors, while presenting computer encryption methods for securing data, praised modern cryptologists like Zimmerman and Schneier but failed to mention that it was Leonardo who had invented one of the first rudimentary forms of public key encryption centuries ago. Sophie's grandfather, of course, had been the one to tell her all about that.
  806. As their armored truck roared down the highway, Sophie explained to Langdon that the cryptex had been Da Vinci's solution to the dilemma of sending secure messages over long distances. In an era without telephones or e-mail, anyone wanting to convey private information to someone far away had no option but to write it down and then trust a messenger to carry the letter. Unfortunately, if a messenger suspected the letter might contain valuable information, he could make far more money selling the information to adversaries than he could delivering the letter properly.
  807. Many great minds in history had invented cryptologic solutions to the challenge of data protection: Julius Caesar devised a code-writing scheme called the Caesar Box; Mary, Queen of Scots created a transposition cipher and sent secret communiqu?s from prison; and the brilliant Arab scientist Abu Yusuf Ismail al-Kindi protected his secrets with an ingeniously conceived polyalphabetic substitution cipher.
  808. Da Vinci, however, eschewed mathematics and cryptology for a mechanical solution. The cryptex. A portable container that could safeguard letters, maps, diagrams, anything at all. Once information was sealed inside the cryptex, only the individual with the proper password could access it.
  809. We require a password, Sophie said, pointing out the lettered dials. A cryptex works much like a bicycle's combination lock. If you align the dials in the proper position, the lock slides open. This cryptex has five lettered dials. When you rotate them to their proper sequence, the tumblers inside align, and the entire cylinder slides apart.
  810. And inside?
  811. Once the cylinder slides apart, you have access to a hollow central compartment, which can hold a scroll of paper on which is the information you want to keep private.
  812. Langdon looked incredulous. And you say your grandfather built these for you when you were younger?
  813. Some smaller ones, yes. A couple times for my birthday, he gave me a cryptex and told me a riddle. The answer to the riddle was the password to the cryptex, and once I figured it out, I could open it up and find my birthday card.
  814. A lot of work for a card.
  815. No, the cards always contained another riddle or clue. My grandfather loved creating elaborate treasure hunts around our house, a string of clues that eventually led to my real gift. Each treasure hunt was a test of character and merit, to ensure I earned my rewards. And the tests were never simple.
  816. Langdon eyed the device again, still looking skeptical. But why not just pry it apart? Or smash it? The metal looks delicate, and marble is a soft rock.
  817. Sophie smiled. Because Da Vinci is too smart for that. He designed the cryptex so that if you try to force it open in any way, the information self-destructs. Watch. Sophie reached into the box and carefully lifted out the cylinder. Any information to be inserted is first written on a papyrus scroll.
  818. Not vellum?
  819. Sophie shook her head. Papyrus. I know sheep's vellum was more durable and more common in those days, but it had to be papyrus. The thinner the better.
  820. Okay.
  821. Before the papyrus was inserted into the cryptex's compartment, it was rolled around a delicate glass vial. She tipped the cryptex, and the liquid inside gurgled. A vial of liquid.
  822. Liquid what?
  823. Sophie smiled. Vinegar.
  824. Langdon hesitated a moment and then began nodding. Brilliant.
  825. Vinegar and papyrus, Sophie thought. If someone attempted to force open the cryptex, the glass vial would break, and the vinegar would quickly dissolve the papyrus. By the time anyone extracted the secret message, it would be a glob of meaningless pulp.
  826. As you can see, Sophie told him, the only way to access the information inside is to know the proper five-letter password. And with five dials, each with twenty-six letters, that's twenty-six to the fifth power. She quickly estimated the permutations. Approximately twelve million possibilities.
  827. If you say so, Langdon said, looking like he had approximately twelve million questions running through his head. What information do you think is inside?
  828. Whatever it is, my grandfather obviously wanted very badly to keep it secret. She paused, closing the box lid and eyeing the five-petal Rose inlaid on it. Something was bothering her. Did you say earlier that the Rose is a symbol for the Grail?
  829. Exactly. In Priory symbolism, the Rose and the Grail are synonymous.
  830. Sophie furrowed her brow. That's strange, because my grandfather always told me the Rose meant secrecy. He used to hang a rose on his office door at home when he was having a confidential phone call and didn't want me to disturb him. He encouraged me to do the same. Sweetie, her grandfather said, rather than lock each other out, we can each hang a rose—la fleur des secrets—on our door when we need privacy. This way we learn to respect and trust each other. Hanging a rose is an ancient Roman custom.
  831. Sub rosa, Langdon said. The Romans hung a rose over meetings to indicate the meeting was confidential. Attendees understood that whatever was said under the rose—or sub rosa—had to remain a secret.
  832. Langdon quickly explained that the Rose's overtone of secrecy was not the only reason the Priory used it as a symbol for the Grail. Rosa rugosa, one of the oldest species of rose, had five petals and pentagonal symmetry, just like the guiding star of Venus, giving the Rose strong iconographic ties to womanhood. In addition, the Rose had close ties to the concept of true direction and navigating one's way. The Compass Rose helped travelers navigate, as did Rose Lines, the longitudinal lines on maps. For this reason, the Rose was a symbol that spoke of the Grail on many levels—secrecy, womanhood, and guidance—the feminine chalice and guiding star that led to secret truth.
  833. As Langdon finished his explanation, his expression seemed to tighten suddenly.
  834. Robert? Are you okay?
  835. His eyes were riveted to the rosewood box. Sub... rosa, he choked, a fearful bewilderment sweeping across his face. It can't be.
  836. What?
  837. Langdon slowly raised his eyes. Under the sign of the Rose, he whispered. This cryptex... I think I know what it is.
  838.  
  839. CHAPTER 48
  840.  
  841. Langdon could scarcely believe his own supposition, and yet, considering who had given this stone cylinder to them, how he had given it to them, and now, the inlaid Rose on the container, Langdon could formulate only one conclusion.
  842. I am holding the Priory keystone.
  843. The legend was specific.
  844. The keystone is an encoded stone that lies beneath the sign of the Rose.
  845. Robert? Sophie was watching him. What's going on?
  846. Langdon needed a moment to gather his thoughts. Did your grandfather ever speak to you of something called la clef de vo?te?
  847. The key to the vault? Sophie translated.
  848. No, that's the literal translation. Clef de vo?te is a common architectural term. Vo?te refers not to a bank vault, but to a vault in an archway. Like a vaulted ceiling.
  849. But vaulted ceilings don't have keys.
  850. Actually they do. Every stone archway requires a central, wedge-shaped stone at the top which locks the pieces together and carries all the weight. This stone is, in an architectural sense, the key to the vault. In English we call it a keystone. Langdon watched her eyes for any spark of recognition.
  851. Sophie shrugged, glancing down at the cryptex. But this obviously is not a keystone.
  852. Langdon didn't know where to begin. Keystones as a masonry technique for building stone archways had been one of the best-kept secrets of the early Masonic brotherhood. The Royal Arch Degree. Architecture. Keystones. It was all interconnected. The secret knowledge of how to use a wedged keystone to build a vaulted archway was part of the wisdom that had made the Masons such wealthy craftsmen, and it was a secret they guarded carefully. Keystones had always had a tradition of secrecy. And yet, the stone cylinder in the rosewood box was obviously something quite different. The Priory keystone—if this was indeed what they were holding—was not at all what Langdon had imagined.
  853. The Priory keystone is not my specialty, Langdon admitted. My interest in the Holy Grail is primarily symbologic, so I tend to ignore the plethora of lore regarding how to actually find it.
  854. Sophie's eyebrows arched. Find the Holy Grail?
  855. Langdon gave an uneasy nod, speaking his next words carefully. Sophie, according to Priory lore, the keystone is an encoded map... a map that reveals the hiding place of the Holy Grail.
  856. Sophie's face went blank. And you think this is it?
  857. Langdon didn't know what to say. Even to him it sounded unbelievable, and yet the keystone was the only logical conclusion he could muster. An encrypted stone, hidden beneath the sign of the Rose.
  858. The idea that the cryptex had been designed by Leonardo da Vinci—former Grand Master of the Priory of Sion—shone as another tantalizing indicator that this was indeed the Priory keystone. A former Grand Master's blueprint... brought to life centuries later by another Priory member. The bond was too palpable to dismiss.
  859. For the last decade, historians had been searching for the keystone in French churches. Grail seekers, familiar with the Priory's history of cryptic double-talk, had concluded la clef de vo?te was a literal keystone—an architectural wedge—an engraved, encrypted stone, inserted into a vaulted archway in a church. Beneath the sign of the Rose. In architecture, there was no shortage of roses. Rose windows. Rosette reliefs. And, of course, an abundance of cinquefoils—the five-petaled decorative flowers often found at the top of archways, directly over the keystone. The hiding place seemed diabolically simple. The map to the Holy Grail was incorporated high in an archway of some forgotten church, mocking the blind churchgoers who wandered beneath it.
  860. This cryptex can't be the keystone, Sophie argued. It's not old enough. I'm certain my grandfather made this. It can't be part of any ancient Grail legend.
  861. Actually, Langdon replied, feeling a tingle of excitement ripple through him, the keystone is believed to have been created by the Priory sometime in the past couple of decades.
  862. Sophie's eyes flashed disbelief. But if this cryptex reveals the hiding place of the Holy Grail, why would my grandfather give it to me? I have no idea how to open it or what to do with it. I don't even know what the Holy Grail is!
  863. Langdon realized to his surprise that she was right. He had not yet had a chance to explain to Sophie the true nature of the Holy Grail. That story would have to wait. At the moment, they were focused on the keystone.
  864. If that is indeed what this is....
  865. Against the hum of the bulletproof wheels beneath them, Langdon quickly explained to Sophie everything he had heard about the keystone. Allegedly, for centuries, the Priory's biggest secret—the location of the Holy Grail—was never written down. For security's sake, it was verbally transferred to each new rising s?n?chal at a clandestine ceremony. However, at some point during the last century, whisperings began to surface that the Priory policy had changed. Perhaps it was on account of new electronic eavesdropping capabilities, but the Priory vowed never again even to speak the location of the sacred hiding place.
  866. But then how could they pass on the secret? Sophie asked.
  867. That's where the keystone comes in, Langdon explained. When one of the top four members died, the remaining three would choose from the lower echelons the next candidate to ascend as s?n?chal. Rather than telling the new s?n?chal where the Grail was hidden, they gave him a test through which he could prove he was worthy.
  868. Sophie looked unsettled by this, and Langdon suddenly recalled her mentioning how her grandfather used to make treasure hunts for her—preuves de m?rite. Admittedly, the keystone was a similar concept. Then again, tests like this were extremely common in secret societies. The best known was the Masons', wherein members ascended to higher degrees by proving they could keep a secret and by performing rituals and various tests of merit over many years. The tasks became progressively harder until they culminated in a successful candidate's induction as thirty-second-degree Mason.
  869. So the keystone is a preuve de m?rite, Sophie said. If a rising Priory s?n?chal can open it, he proves himself worthy of the information it holds.
  870. Langdon nodded. I forgot you'd had experience with this sort of thing.
  871. Not only with my grandfather. In cryptology, that's called a 'self-authorizing language.' That is, if you're smart enough to read it, you're permitted to know what is being said.
  872. Langdon hesitated a moment. Sophie, you realize that if this is indeed the keystone, your grandfather's access to it implies he was exceptionally powerful within the Priory of Sion. He would have to have been one of the highest four members.
  873. Sophie sighed. He was powerful in a secret society. I'm certain of it. I can only assume it was the Priory.
  874. Langdon did a double take. You knew he was in a secret society?
  875. I saw some things I wasn't supposed to see ten years ago. We haven't spoken since. She paused. My grandfather was not only a ranking top member of the group... I believe he was the top member.
  876. Langdon could not believe what she had just said. Grand Master? But... there's no way you could know that!
  877. I'd rather not talk about it. Sophie looked away, her expression as determined as it was pained.
  878. Langdon sat in stunned silence. Jacques Saunière? Grand Master? Despite the astonishing repercussions if it were true, Langdon had the eerie sensation it almost made perfect sense. After all, previous Priory Grand Masters had also been distinguished public figures with artistic souls. Proof of that fact had been uncovered years ago in Paris's Bibliothèque Nationale in papers that became known as Les Dossiers Secrets.
  879. Every Priory historian and Grail buff had read the Dossiers. Cataloged under Number 4° lm1 249, the Dossiers Secrets had been authenticated by many specialists and incontrovertibly confirmed what historians had suspected for a long time: Priory Grand Masters included Leonardo da Vinci, Botticelli, Sir Isaac Newton, Victor Hugo, and, more recently, Jean Cocteau, the famous Parisian artist.
  880. Why not Jacques Saunière?
  881. Langdon's incredulity intensified with the realization that he had been slated to meet Saunière tonight. The Priory Grand Master called a meeting with me. Why? To make artistic small talk? It suddenly seemed unlikely. After all, if Langdon's instincts were correct, the Grand Master of the Priory of Sion had just transferred the brotherhood's legendary keystone to his granddaughter and simultaneously commanded her to find Robert Langdon.
  882. Inconceivable!
  883. Langdon's imagination could conjure no set of circumstances that would explain Saunière's behavior. Even if Saunière feared his own death, there were three s?n?chaux who also possessed the secret and therefore guaranteed the Priory's security. Why would Saunière take such an enormous risk giving his granddaughter the keystone, especially when the two of them didn't get along? And why involve Langdon... a total stranger?
  884. A piece of this puzzle is missing, Langdon thought.
  885. The answers were apparently going to have to wait. The sound of the slowing engine caused them both to look up. Gravel crunched beneath the tires. Why is he pulling over already? Langdon wondered. Vernet had told them he would take them well outside the city to safety. The truck decelerated to a crawl and made its way over unexpectedly rough terrain. Sophie shot Langdon an uneasy look, hastily closing the cryptex box and latching it. Langdon slipped his jacket back on.
  886. When the truck came to a stop, the engine remained idling as the locks on the rear doors began to turn. When the doors swung open, Langdon was surprised to see they were parked in a wooded area, well off the road. Vernet stepped into view, a strained look in his eye. In his hand, he held a pistol.
  887. I'm sorry about this, he said. I really have no choice.
  888.  
  889. CHAPTER 49
  890.  
  891. Andr? Vernet looked awkward with a pistol, but his eyes shone with a determination that Langdon sensed would be unwise to test.
  892. I'm afraid I must insist, Vernet said, training the weapon on the two of them in the back of the idling truck. Set the box down.
  893. Sophie clutched the box to her chest. You said you and my grandfather were friends.
  894. I have a duty to protect your grandfather's assets, Vernet replied. And that is exactly what I am doing. Now set the box on the floor.
  895. My grandfather entrusted this to me! Sophie declared.
  896. Do it, Vernet commanded, raising the gun.
  897. Sophie set the box at her feet.
  898. Langdon watched the gun barrel swing now in his direction.
  899. Mr. Langdon, Vernet said, you will bring the box over to me. And be aware that I'm asking you because you I would not hesitate to shoot.
  900. Langdon stared at the banker in disbelief. Why are you doing this?
  901. Why do you imagine? Vernet snapped, his accented English terse now. To protect my client's assets.
  902. We are your clients now, Sophie said.
  903. Vernet's visage turned ice-cold, an eerie transformation. Mademoiselle Neveu, I don't know how you got that key and account number tonight, but it seems obvious that foul play was involved. Had I known the extent of your crimes, I would never have helped you leave the bank.
  904. I told you, Sophie said, we had nothing to do with my grandfather's death!
  905. Vernet looked at Langdon. And yet the radio claims you are wanted not only for the murder of Jacques Saunière but for those of three other men as well?
  906. What! Langdon was thunderstruck. Three more murders? The coincidental number hit him harder than the fact that he was the prime suspect. It seemed too unlikely to be a coincidence. The three s?n?chaux? Langdon's eyes dropped to the rosewood box. If the s?n?chaux were murdered, Saunière had no options. He had to transfer the keystone to someone.
  907. The police can sort that out when I turn you in, Vernet said. I have gotten my bank involved too far already.
  908. Sophie glared at Vernet. You obviously have no intention of turning us in. You would have driven us back to the bank. And instead you bring us out here and hold us at gunpoint?
  909. Your grandfather hired me for one reason—to keep his possessions both safe and private. Whatever this box contains, I have no intention of letting it become a piece of cataloged evidence in a police investigation. Mr. Langdon, bring me the box.
  910. Sophie shook her head. Don't do it.
  911. A gunshot roared, and a bullet tore into the wall above him. The reverberation shook the back of the truck as a spent shell clinked onto the cargo floor.
  912. Shit! Langdon froze.
  913. Vernet spoke more confidently now. Mr. Langdon, pick up the box.
  914. Langdon lifted the box.
  915. Now bring it over to me. Vernet was taking dead aim, standing on the ground behind the rear bumper, his gun outstretched into the cargo hold now.
  916. Box in hand, Langdon moved across the hold toward the open door.
  917. I've got to do something! Langdon thought. I'm about to hand over the Priory keystone! As Langdon moved toward the doorway, his position of higher ground became more pronounced, and he began wondering if he could somehow use it to his advantage. Vernet's gun, though raised, was at Langdon's knee level. A well-placed kick perhaps? Unfortunately, as Langdon neared, Vernet seemed to sense the dangerous dynamic developing, and he took several steps back, repositioning himself six feet away. Well out of reach.
  918. Vernet commanded, Place the box beside the door.
  919. Seeing no options, Langdon knelt down and set the rosewood box at the edge of the cargo hold, directly in front of the open doors.
  920. Now stand up.
  921. Langdon began to stand up but paused, spying the small, spent pistol shell on the floor beside the truck's precision-crafted doorsill.
  922. Stand up, and step away from the box.
  923. Langdon paused a moment longer, eyeing the metal threshold. Then he stood. As he did, he discreetly brushed the shell over the edge onto the narrow ledge that was the door's lower sill. Fully upright now, Langdon stepped backward.
  924. Return to the back wall and turn around.
  925. Langdon obeyed.
  926.  
  927. Vernet could feel his own heart pounding. Aiming the gun with his right hand, he reached now with his left for the wooden box. He discovered that it was far too heavy. I need two hands. Turning his eyes back to his captives, he calculated the risk. Both were a good fifteen feet away, at the far end of the cargo hold, facing away from him. Vernet made up his mind. Quickly, he laid down the gun on the bumper, lifted the box with two hands, and set it on the ground, immediately grabbing the gun again and aiming it back into the hold. Neither of his prisoners had moved.
  928. Perfect. Now all that remained was to close and lock the door. Leaving the box on the ground for the moment, he grabbed the metal door and began to heave it closed. As the door swung past him, Vernet reached up to grab the single bolt that needed to be slid into place. The door closed with a thud, and Vernet quickly grabbed the bolt, pulling it to the left. The bolt slid a few inches and crunched to an unexpected halt, not lining up with its sleeve. What's going on? Vernet pulled again, but the bolt wouldn't lock. The mechanism was not properly aligned. The door isn't fully closed! Feeling a surge of panic, Vernet shoved hard against the outside of the door, but it refused to budge. Something is blocking it! Vernet turned to throw full shoulder into the door, but this time the door exploded outward, striking Vernet in the face and sending him reeling backward onto the ground, his nose shattering in pain. The gun flew as Vernet reached for his face and felt the warm blood running from his nose.
  929. Robert Langdon hit the ground somewhere nearby, and Vernet tried to get up, but he couldn't see. His vision blurred and he fell backward again. Sophie Neveu was shouting. Moments later, Vernet felt a cloud of dirt and exhaust billowing over him. He heard the crunching of tires on gravel and sat up just in time to see the truck's wide wheelbase fail to navigate a turn. There was a crash as the front bumper clipped a tree. The engine roared, and the tree bent. Finally, it was the bumper that gave, tearing half off. The armored car lurched away, its front bumper dragging. When the truck reached the paved access road, a shower of sparks lit up the night, trailing the truck as it sped away.
  930. Vernet turned his eyes back to the ground where the truck had been parked. Even in the faint moonlight he could see there was nothing there.
  931. The wooden box was gone.
  932.  
  933. CHAPTER 50
  934.  
  935. The unmarked Fiat sedan departing Castel Gandolfo snaked downward through the Alban Hills into the valley below. In the back seat, Bishop Aringarosa smiled, feeling the weight of the bearer bonds in the briefcase on his lap and wondering how long it would be before he and the Teacher could make the exchange.
  936. Twenty million euro.
  937. The sum would buy Aringarosa power far more valuable than that.
  938. As his car sped back toward Rome, Aringarosa again found himself wondering why the Teacher had not yet contacted him. Pulling his cell phone from his cassock pocket, he checked the carrier signal. Extremely faint.
  939. Cell service is intermittent up here, the driver said, glancing at him in the rearview mirror. In about five minutes, we'll be out of the mountains, and service improves.
  940. Thank you. Aringarosa felt a sudden surge of concern. No service in the mountains? Maybe the Teacher had been trying to reach him all this time. Maybe something had gone terribly wrong.
  941. Quickly, Aringarosa checked the phone's voice mail. Nothing. Then again, he realized, the Teacher never would have left a recorded message; he was a man who took enormous care with his communications. Nobody understood better than the Teacher the perils of speaking openly in this modern world. Electronic eavesdropping had played a major role in how he had gathered his astonishing array of secret knowledge.
  942. For this reason, he takes extra precautions.
  943. Unfortunately, the Teacher's protocols for caution included a refusal to give Aringarosa any kind of contact number. I alone will initiate contact, the Teacher had informed him. So keep your phone close. Now that Aringarosa realized his phone might not have been working properly, he feared what the Teacher might think if he had been repeatedly phoning with no answer.
  944. He'll think something is wrong.
  945. Or that I failed to get the bonds.
  946. The bishop broke a light sweat.
  947. Or worse... that I took the money and ran!
  948.  
  949. CHAPTER 51
  950.  
  951. Even at a modest sixty kilometers an hour, the dangling front bumper of the armored truck grated against the deserted suburban road with a grinding roar, spraying sparks up onto the hood.
  952. We've got to get off the road, Langdon thought.
  953. He could barely even see where they were headed. The truck's lone working headlight had been knocked off-center and was casting a skewed sidelong beam into the woods beside the country highway. Apparently the armor in this armored truck referred only to the cargo hold and not the front end.
  954. Sophie sat in the passenger seat, staring blankly at the rosewood box on her lap.
  955. Are you okay? Langdon asked.
  956. Sophie looked shaken. Do you believe him?
  957. About the three additional murders? Absolutely. It answers a lot of questions—the issue of your grandfather's desperation to pass on the keystone, as well as the intensity with which Fache is hunting me.
  958. No, I meant about Vernet trying to protect his bank.
  959. Langdon glanced over. As opposed to?
  960. Taking the keystone for himself.
  961. Langdon had not even considered it. How would he even know what this box contains?
  962. His bank stored it. He knew my grandfather. Maybe he knew things. He might have decided he wanted the Grail for himself.
  963. Langdon shook his head. Vernet hardly seemed the type. In my experience, there are only two reasons people seek the Grail. Either they are naive and believe they are searching for the long-lost Cup of Christ...
  964. Or?
  965. Or they know the truth and are threatened by it. Many groups throughout history have sought to destroy the Grail.
  966. The silence between them accentuated the sound of the scraping bumper. They had driven a few kilometers now, and as Langdon watched the cascade of sparks coming off the front of the truck, he wondered if it was dangerous. Either way, if they passed another car, it would certainly draw attention. Langdon made up his mind.
  967. I'm going to see if I can bend this bumper back.
  968. Pulling onto the shoulder, he brought the truck to a stop.
  969. Silence at last.
  970. As Langdon walked toward the front of the truck, he felt surprisingly alert. Staring into the barrel of yet another gun tonight had given him a second wind. He took a deep breath of nighttime air and tried to get his wits about him. Accompanying the gravity of being a hunted man, Langdon was starting to feel the ponderous weight of responsibility, the prospect that he and Sophie might actually be holding an encrypted set of directions to one of the most enduring mysteries of all time.
  971. As if this burden were not great enough, Langdon now realized that any possibility of finding a way to return the keystone to the Priory had just evaporated. News of the three additional murders had dire implications. The Priory has been infiltrated. They are compromised. The brotherhood was obviously being watched, or there was a mole within the ranks. It seemed to explain why Saunière might have transferred the keystone to Sophie and Langdon—people outside the brotherhood, people he knew were not compromised. We can't very well give the keystone back to the brotherhood. Even if Langdon had any idea how to find a Priory member, chances were good that whoever stepped forward to take the keystone could be the enemy himself. For the moment, at least, it seemed the keystone was in Sophie and Langdon's hands, whether they wanted it or not.
  972. The truck's front end looked worse than Langdon had imagined. The left headlight was gone, and the right one looked like an eyeball dangling from its socket. Langdon straightened it, and it dislodged again. The only good news was that the front bumper had been torn almost clean off. Langdon gave it a hard kick and sensed he might be able to break it off entirely.
  973. As he repeatedly kicked the twisted metal, Langdon recalled his earlier conversation with Sophie. My grandfather left me a phone message, Sophie had told him. He said he needed to tell me the truth about my family. At the time it had meant nothing, but now, knowing the Priory of Sion was involved, Langdon felt a startling new possibility emerge.
  974. The bumper broke off suddenly with a crash. Langdon paused to catch his breath. At least the truck would no longer look like a Fourth of July sparkler. He grabbed the bumper and began dragging it out of sight into the woods, wondering where they should go next. They had no idea how to open the cryptex, or why Saunière had given it to them. Unfortunately, their survival tonight seemed to depend on getting answers to those very questions.
  975. We need help, Langdon decided. Professional help.
  976. In the world of the Holy Grail and the Priory of Sion, that meant only one man. The challenge, of course, would be selling the idea to Sophie.
  977.  
  978. Inside the armored car, while Sophie waited for Langdon to return, she could feel the weight of the rosewood box on her lap and resented it. Why did my grandfather give this to me? She had not the slightest idea what to do with it.
  979. Think, Sophie! Use your head. Grand-père is trying to tell you something!
  980. Opening the box, she eyed the cryptex's dials. A proof of merit. She could feel her grandfather's hand at work. The keystone is a map that can be followed only by the worthy. It sounded like her grandfather to the core.
  981. Lifting the cryptex out of the box, Sophie ran her fingers over the dials. Five letters. She rotated the dials one by one. The mechanism moved smoothly. She aligned the disks such that her chosen letters lined up between the cryptex's two brass alignment arrows on either end of the cylinder. The dials now spelled a five-letter word that Sophie knew was absurdly obvious.
  982. G-R-A-I-L.
  983. Gently, she held the two ends of the cylinder and pulled, applying pressure slowly. The cryptex didn't budge. She heard the vinegar inside gurgle and stopped pulling. Then she tried again.
  984. V-I-N-C-I
  985. Again, no movement.
  986. V-O-U-T-E
  987. Nothing. The cryptex remained locked solid.
  988. Frowning, she replaced it in the rosewood box and closed the lid. Looking outside at Langdon, Sophie felt grateful he was with her tonight. P.S. Find Robert Langdon. Her grandfather's rationale for including him was now clear. Sophie was not equipped to understand her grandfather's intentions, and so he had assigned Robert Langdon as her guide. A tutor to oversee her education. Unfortunately for Langdon, he had turned out to be far more than a tutor tonight. He had become the target of Bezu Fache... and some unseen force intent on possessing the Holy Grail.
  989. Whatever the Grail turns out to be.
  990. Sophie wondered if finding out was worth her life.
  991.  
  992. As the armored truck accelerated again, Langdon was pleased how much more smoothly it drove. Do you know how to get to Versailles?
  993. Sophie eyed him. Sightseeing?
  994. No, I have a plan. There's a religious historian I know who lives near Versailles. I can't remember exactly where, but we can look it up. I've been to his estate a few times. His name is Leigh Teabing. He's a former British Royal Historian.
  995. And he lives in Paris?
  996. Teabing's life passion is the Grail. When whisperings of the Priory keystone surfaced about fifteen years ago, he moved to France to search churches in hopes of finding it. He's written some books on the keystone and the Grail. He may be able to help us figure out how to open it and what to do with it.
  997. Sophie's eyes were wary. Can you trust him?
  998. Trust him to what? Not steal the information?
  999. And not to turn us in.
  1000. I don't intend to tell him we're wanted by the police. I'm hoping he'll take us in until we can sort all this out.
  1001. Robert, has it occurred to you that every television in France is probably getting ready to broadcast our pictures? Bezu Fache always uses the media to his advantage. He'll make it impossible for us to move around without being recognized.
  1002. Terrific, Langdon thought. My French TV debut will be on Paris's Most Wanted. At least Jonas Faukman would be pleased; every time Langdon made the news, his book sales jumped.
  1003. Is this man a good enough friend? Sophie asked.
  1004. Langdon doubted Teabing was someone who watched television, especially at this hour, but still the question deserved consideration. Instinct told Langdon that Teabing would be totally trustworthy. An ideal safe harbor. Considering the circumstances, Teabing would probably trip over himself to help them as much as possible. Not only did he owe Langdon a favor, but Teabing was a Grail researcher, and Sophie claimed her grandfather was the actual Grand Master of the Priory of Sion. If Teabing heard that, he would salivate at the thought of helping them figure this out.
  1005. Teabing could be a powerful ally, Langdon said. Depending on how much you want to tell him.
  1006. Fache probably will be offering a monetary reward.
  1007. Langdon laughed. Believe me, money is the last thing this guy needs. Leigh Teabing was wealthy in the way small countries were wealthy. A descendant of Britain's First Duke of Lancaster, Teabing had gotten his money the old-fashioned way—he'd inherited it. His estate outside of Paris was a seventeenth-century palace with two private lakes.
  1008. Langdon had first met Teabing several years ago through the British Broadcasting Corporation. Teabing had approached the BBC with a proposal for a historical documentary in which he would expose the explosive history of the Holy Grail to a mainstream television audience. The BBC producers loved Teabing's hot premise, his research, and his credentials, but they had concerns that the concept was so shocking and hard to swallow that the network might end up tarnishing its reputation for quality journalism. At Teabing's suggestion, the BBC solved its credibility fears by soliciting three cameos from respected historians from around the world, all of whom corroborated the stunning nature of the Holy Grail secret with their own research.
  1009. Langdon had been among those chosen.
  1010. The BBC had flown Langdon to Teabing's Paris estate for the filming. He sat before cameras in Teabing's opulent drawing room and shared his story, admitting his initial skepticism on hearing of the alternate Holy Grail story, then describing how years of research had persuaded him that the story was true. Finally, Langdon offered some of his own research—a series of symbologic connections that strongly supported the seemingly controversial claims.
  1011. When the program aired in Britain, despite its ensemble cast and well-documented evidence, the premise rubbed so hard against the grain of popular Christian thought that it instantly confronted a firestorm of hostility. It never aired in the States, but the repercussions echoed across the Atlantic. Shortly afterward, Langdon received a postcard from an old friend—the Catholic Bishop of Philadelphia. The card simply read: Et tu, Robert?
  1012. Robert, Sophie asked, you're certain we can trust this man?
  1013. Absolutely. We're colleagues, he doesn't need money, and I happen to know he despises the French authorities. The French government taxes him at absurd rates because he bought a historic landmark. He'll be in no hurry to cooperate with Fache.
  1014. Sophie stared out at the dark roadway. If we go to him, how much do you want to tell him?
  1015. Langdon looked unconcerned. Believe me, Leigh Teabing knows more about the Priory of Sion and the Holy Grail than anyone on earth.
  1016. Sophie eyed him. More than my grandfather?
  1017. I meant more than anyone outside the brotherhood.
  1018. How do you know Teabing isn't a member of the brotherhood?
  1019. Teabing has spent his life trying to broadcast the truth about the Holy Grail. The Priory's oath is to keep its true nature hidden.
  1020. Sounds to me like a conflict of interest.
  1021. Langdon understood her concerns. Saunière had given the cryptex directly to Sophie, and although she didn't know what it contained or what she was supposed to do with it, she was hesitant to involve a total stranger. Considering the information potentially enclosed, the instinct was probably a good one. We don't need to tell Teabing about the keystone immediately. Or at all, even. His house will give us a place to hide and think, and maybe when we talk to him about the Grail, you'll start to have an idea why your grandfather gave this to you.
  1022. Us, Sophie reminded.
  1023. Langdon felt a humble pride and wondered yet again why Saunière had included him.
  1024. Do you know more or less where Mr. Teabing lives? Sophie asked.
  1025. His estate is called Ch?teau Villette.
  1026. Sophie turned with an incredulous look. The Ch?teau Villette?
  1027. That's the one.
  1028. Nice friends.
  1029. You know the estate?
  1030. I've passed it. It's in the castle district. Twenty minutes from here.
  1031. Langdon frowned. That far?
  1032. Yes, which will give you enough time to tell me what the Holy Grail really is.
  1033. Langdon paused. I'll tell you at Teabing's. He and I specialize in different areas of the legend, so between the two of us, you'll get the full story. Langdon smiled. Besides, the Grail has been Teabing's life, and hearing the story of the Holy Grail from Leigh Teabing will be like hearing the theory of relativity from Einstein himself.
  1034. Let's hope Leigh doesn't mind late-night visitors.
  1035. For the record, it's Sir Leigh. Langdon had made that mistake only once. Teabing is quite a character. He was knighted by the Queen several years back after composing an extensive history on the House of York.
  1036. Sophie looked over. You're kidding, right? We're going to visit a knight?
  1037. Langdon gave an awkward smile. We're on a Grail quest, Sophie. Who better to help us than a knight?
  1038.  
  1039. CHAPTER 52
  1040.  
  1041. The Sprawling 185-acre estate of Ch?teau Villette was located twenty-five minutes northwest of Paris in the environs of Versailles. Designed by Fran?ois Mansart in 1668 for the Count of Aufflay, it was one of Paris's most significant historical ch?teaux. Complete with two rectangular lakes and gardens designed by Le N?tre, Ch?teau Villette was more of a modest castle than a mansion. The estate fondly had become known as la Petite Versailles.
  1042. Langdon brought the armored truck to a shuddering stop at the foot of the mile-long driveway. Beyond the imposing security gate, Sir Leigh Teabing's residence rose on a meadow in the distance. The sign on the gate was in English: PRIVATE PROPERTY. NO TRESPASSING.
  1043. As if to proclaim his home a British Isle unto itself, Teabing had not only posted his signs in English, but he had installed his gate's intercom entry system on the right-hand side of the truck—the passenger's side everywhere in Europe except England.
  1044. Sophie gave the misplaced intercom an odd look. And if someone arrives without a passenger?
  1045. Don't ask. Langdon had already been through that with Teabing. He prefers things the way they are at home.
  1046. Sophie rolled down her window. Robert, you'd better do the talking.
  1047. Langdon shifted his position, leaning out across Sophie to press the intercom button. As he did, an alluring whiff of Sophie's perfume filled his nostrils, and he realized how close they were. He waited there, awkwardly prone, while a telephone began ringing over the small speaker.
  1048. Finally, the intercom crackled and an irritated French accent spoke. Ch?teau Villette. Who is calling?
  1049. This is Robert Langdon, Langdon called out, sprawled across Sophie's lap. I'm a friend of Sir Leigh Teabing. I need his help.
  1050. My master is sleeping. As was I. What is your business with him?
  1051. It is a private matter. One of great interest to him.
  1052. Then I'm sure he will be pleased to receive you in the morning.
  1053. Langdon shifted his weight. It's quite important.
  1054. As is Sir Leigh's sleep. If you are a friend, then you are aware he is in poor health.
  1055. Sir Leigh Teabing had suffered from polio as a child and now wore leg braces and walked with crutches, but Langdon had found him such a lively and colorful man on his last visit that it hardly seemed an infirmity. If you would, please tell him I have uncovered new information about the Grail. Information that cannot wait until morning.
  1056. There was a long pause.
  1057. Langdon and Sophie waited, the truck idling loudly.
  1058. A full minute passed.
  1059. Finally, someone spoke. My good man, I daresay you are still on Harvard Standard Time. The voice was crisp and light.
  1060. Langdon grinned, recognizing the thick British accent. Leigh, my apologies for waking you at this obscene hour.
  1061. My manservant tells me that not only are you in Paris, but you speak of the Grail.
  1062. I thought that might get you out of bed.
  1063. And so it has.
  1064. Any chance you'd open the gate for an old friend?
  1065. Those who seek the truth are more than friends. They are brothers.
  1066. Langdon rolled his eyes at Sophie, well accustomed to Teabing's predilection for dramatic antics.
  1067. Indeed I will open the gate, Teabing proclaimed, but first I must confirm your heart is true. A test of your honor. You will answer three questions.
  1068. Langdon groaned, whispering at Sophie. Bear with me here. As I mentioned, he's something of a character.
  1069. Your first question, Teabing declared, his tone Herculean. Shall I serve you coffee, or tea?
  1070. Langdon knew Teabing's feelings about the American phenomenon of coffee. Tea, he replied. Earl Grey.
  1071. Excellent. Your second question. Milk or sugar?
  1072. Langdon hesitated.
  1073. Milk, Sophie whispered in his ear. I think the British take milk.
  1074. Milk, Langdon said.
  1075. Silence.
  1076. Sugar?
  1077. Teabing made no reply.
  1078. Wait! Langdon now recalled the bitter beverage he had been served on his last visit and realized this question was a trick. Lemon! he declared. Earl Grey with lemon
  1079. Indeed. Teabing sounded deeply amused now. And finally, I must make the most grave of inquiries. Teabing paused and then spoke in a solemn tone. In which year did a Harvard sculler last outrow an Oxford man at Henley?
  1080. Langdon had no idea, but he could imagine only one reason the question had been asked. Surely such a travesty has never occurred.
  1081. The gate clicked open. Your heart is true, my friend. You may pass.
  1082.  
  1083. CHAPTER 53
  1084.  
  1085. Monsieur Vernet! The night manager of the Depository Bank of Zurich felt relieved to hear the bank president's voice on the phone. Where did you go, sir? The police are here, everyone is waiting for you!
  1086. I have a little problem, the bank president said, sounding distressed. I need your help right away.
  1087. You have more than a little problem, the manager thought. The police had entirely surrounded the bank and were threatening to have the DCPJ captain himself show up with the warrant the bank had demanded. How can I help you, sir?
  1088. Armored truck number three. I need to find it.
  1089. Puzzled, the manager checked his delivery schedule. It's here. Downstairs at the loading dock.
  1090. Actually, no. The truck was stolen by the two individuals the police are tracking.
  1091. What? How did they drive out?
  1092. I can't go into the specifics on the phone, but we have a situation here that could potentially be extremely unfortunate for the bank.
  1093. What do you need me to do, sir?
  1094. I'd like you to activate the truck's emergency transponder.
  1095. The night manager's eyes moved to the LoJack control box across the room. Like many armored cars, each of the bank's trucks had been equipped with a radio-controlled homing device, which could be activated remotely from the bank. The manager had only used the emergency system once, after a hijacking, and it had worked flawlessly—locating the truck and transmitting the coordinates to the authorities automatically. Tonight, however, the manager had the impression the president was hoping for a bit more prudence. Sir, you are aware that if I activate the LoJack system, the transponder will simultaneously inform the authorities that we have a problem.
  1096. Vernet was silent for several seconds. Yes, I know. Do it anyway. Truck number three. I'll hold. I need the exact location of that truck the instant you have it.
  1097. Right away, sir.
  1098.  
  1099. Thirty seconds later, forty kilometers away, hidden in the undercarriage of the armored truck, a tiny transponder blinked to life.
  1100.  
  1101. CHAPTER 54
  1102.  
  1103. As Langdon and Sophie drove the armored truck up the winding, poplar-lined driveway toward the house, Sophie could already feel her muscles relaxing. It was a relief to be off the road, and she could think of few safer places to get their feet under them than this private, gated estate owned by a good-natured foreigner.
  1104. They turned into the sweeping circular driveway, and Ch?teau Villette came into view on their right. Three stories tall and at least sixty meters long, the edifice had gray stone facing illuminated by outside spotlights. The coarse facade stood in stark juxtaposition to the immaculately landscaped gardens and glassy pond.
  1105. The inside lights were just now coming on.
  1106. Rather than driving to the front door, Langdon pulled into a parking area nestled in the evergreens. No reason to risk being spotted from the road, he said. Or having Leigh wonder why we arrived in a wrecked armored truck.
  1107. Sophie nodded. What do we do with the cryptex? We probably shouldn't leave it out here, but if Leigh sees it, he'll certainly want to know what it is.
  1108. Not to worry, Langdon said, removing his jacket as he stepped out of the car. He wrapped the tweed coat around the box and held the bundle in his arms like a baby.
  1109. Sophie looked dubious. Subtle.
  1110. Teabing never answers his own door; he prefers to make an entrance. I'll find somewhere inside to stash this before he joins us. Langdon paused. Actually, I should probably warn you before you meet him. Sir Leigh has a sense of humor that people often find a bit... strange.
  1111. Sophie doubted anything tonight would strike her as strange anymore.
  1112. The pathway to the main entrance was hand-laid cobblestone. It curved to a door of carved oak and cherry with a brass knocker the size of a grapefruit. Before Sophie could grasp the knocker, the door swung open from within.
  1113. A prim and elegant butler stood before them, making final adjustments on the white tie and tuxedo he had apparently just donned. He looked to be about fifty, with refined features and an austere expression that left little doubt he was unamused by their presence here.
  1114. Sir Leigh will be down presently, he declared, his accent thick French. He is dressing. He prefers not to greet visitors while wearing only a nightshirt. May I take your coat? He scowled at the bunched-up tweed in Langdon's arms.
  1115. Thank you, I'm fine.
  1116. Of course you are. Right this way, please.
  1117. The butler guided them through a lush marble foyer into an exquisitely adorned drawing room, softly lit by tassel-draped Victorian lamps. The air inside smelled antediluvian, regal somehow, with traces of pipe tobacco, tea leaves, cooking sherry, and the earthen aroma of stone architecture. Against the far wall, flanked between two glistening suits of chain mail armor, was a rough-hewn fireplace large enough to roast an ox. Walking to the hearth, the butler knelt and touched a match to a pre-laid arrangement of oak logs and kindling. A fire quickly crackled to life.
  1118. The man stood, straightening his jacket. His master requests that you make yourselves at home. With that, he departed, leaving Langdon and Sophie alone.
  1119. Sophie wondered which of the fireside antiques she was supposed to sit on—the Renaissance velvet divan, the rustic eagle-claw rocker, or the pair of stone pews that looked like they'd been lifted from some Byzantine temple.
  1120. Langdon unwrapped the cryptex from his coat, walked to the velvet divan, and slid the wooden box deep underneath it, well out of sight. Then, shaking out his jacket, he put it back on, smoothed the lapels, and smiled at Sophie as he sat down directly over the stashed treasure.
  1121. The divan it is, Sophie thought, taking a seat beside him.
  1122. As she stared into the growing fire, enjoying the warmth, Sophie had the sensation that her grandfather would have loved this room. The dark wood paneling was bedecked with Old Master paintings, one of which Sophie recognized as a Poussin, her grandfather's second-favorite painter. On the mantel above the fireplace, an alabaster bust of Isis watched over the room.
  1123. Beneath the Egyptian goddess, inside the fireplace, two stone gargoyles served as andirons, their mouths gaping to reveal their menacing hollow throats. Gargoyles had always terrified Sophie as a child; that was, until her grandfather cured her of the fear by taking her atop Notre Dame Cathedral in a rainstorm. Princess, look at these silly creatures, he had told her, pointing to the gargoyle rainspouts with their mouths gushing water. Do you hear that funny sound in their throats? Sophie nodded, having to smile at the burping sound of the water gurgling through their throats. They're gargling, her grandfather told her. Gargariser! And that's where they get the silly name 'gargoyles.' Sophie had never again been afraid.
  1124. The fond memory caused Sophie a pang of sadness as the harsh reality of the murder gripped her again. Grand-père is gone. She pictured the cryptex under the divan and wondered if Leigh Teabing would have any idea how to open it. Or if we even should ask him. Sophie's grandfather's final words had instructed her to find Robert Langdon. He had said nothing about involving anyone else. We needed somewhere to hide, Sophie said, deciding to trust Robert's judgment.
  1125. Sir Robert! a voice bellowed somewhere behind them. I see you travel with a maiden.
  1126. Langdon stood up. Sophie jumped to her feet as well. The voice had come from the top of a curled staircase that snaked up to the shadows of the second floor. At the top of the stairs, a form moved in the shadows, only his silhouette visible.
  1127. Good evening, Langdon called up. Sir Leigh, may I present Sophie Neveu.
  1128. An honor. Teabing moved into the light.
  1129. Thank you for having us, Sophie said, now seeing the man wore metal leg braces and used crutches. He was coming down one stair at a time. I realize it's quite late.
  1130. It is so late, my dear, it's early. He laughed. Vous n'?tes pas Am?ricaine?
  1131. Sophie shook her head. Parisienne.
  1132. Your English is superb.
  1133. Thank you. I studied at the Royal Holloway.
  1134. So then, that explains it. Teabing hobbled lower through the shadows. Perhaps Robert told you I schooled just down the road at Oxford. Teabing fixed Langdon with a devilish smile. Of course, I also applied to Harvard as my safety school.
  1135. Their host arrived at the bottom of the stairs, appearing to Sophie no more like a knight than Sir Elton John. Portly and ruby-faced, Sir Leigh Teabing had bushy red hair and jovial hazel eyes that seemed to twinkle as he spoke. He wore pleated pants and a roomy silk shirt under a paisley vest. Despite the aluminum braces on his legs, he carried himself with a resilient, vertical dignity that seemed more a by-product of noble ancestry than any kind of conscious effort.
  1136. Teabing arrived and extended a hand to Langdon. Robert, you've lost weight.
  1137. Langdon grinned. And you've found some.
  1138. Teabing laughed heartily, patting his rotund belly. Touch?. My only carnal pleasures these days seem to be culinary. Turning now to Sophie, he gently took her hand, bowing his head slightly, breathing lightly on her fingers, and diverting his eyes. M'lady.
  1139. Sophie glanced at Langdon, uncertain whether she'd stepped back in time or into a nuthouse.
  1140. The butler who had answered the door now entered carrying a tea service, which he arranged on a table in front of the fireplace.
  1141. This is R?my Legaludec, Teabing said, my manservant.
  1142. The slender butler gave a stiff nod and disappeared yet again.
  1143. R?my is Lyonais, Teabing whispered, as if it were an unfortunate disease. But he does sauces quite nicely.
  1144. Langdon looked amused. I would have thought you'd import an English staff?
  1145. Good heavens, no! I would not wish a British chef on anyone except the French tax collectors. He glanced over at Sophie. Pardonnez-moi, Mademoiselle Neveu. Please be assured that my distaste for the French extends only to politics and the soccer pitch. Your government steals my money, and your football squad recently humiliated us.
  1146. Sophie offered an easy smile.
  1147. Teabing eyed her a moment and then looked at Langdon. Something has happened. You both look shaken.
  1148. Langdon nodded. We've had an interesting night, Leigh.
  1149. No doubt. You arrive on my doorstep unannounced in the middle of the night speaking of the Grail. Tell me, is this indeed about the Grail, or did you simply say that because you know it is the lone topic for which I would rouse myself in the middle of the night?
  1150. A little of both, Sophie thought, picturing the cryptex hidden beneath the couch.
  1151. Leigh, Langdon said, we'd like to talk to you about the Priory of Sion.
  1152. Teabing's bushy eyebrows arched with intrigue. The keepers. So this is indeed about the Grail. You say you come with information? Something new, Robert?
  1153. Perhaps. We're not quite sure. We might have a better idea if we could get some information from you first.
  1154. Teabing wagged his finger. Ever the wily American. A game of quid pro quo. Very well. I am at your service. What is it I can tell you?
  1155. Langdon sighed. I was hoping you would be kind enough to explain to Ms. Neveu the true nature of the Holy Grail.
  1156. Teabing looked stunned. She doesn't know?
  1157. Langdon shook his head.
  1158. The smile that grew on Teabing's face was almost obscene. Robert, you've brought me a virgin?
  1159. Langdon winced, glancing at Sophie. Virgin is the term Grail enthusiasts use to describe anyone who has never heard the true Grail story.
  1160. Teabing turned eagerly to Sophie. How much do you know, my dear?
  1161. Sophie quickly outlined what Langdon had explained earlier—the Priory of Sion, the Knights Templar, the Sangreal documents, and the Holy Grail, which many claimed was not a cup... but rather something far more powerful.
  1162. That's all? Teabing fired Langdon a scandalous look. Robert, I thought you were a gentleman. You've robbed her of the climax!
  1163. I know, I thought perhaps you and I could... Langdon apparently decided the unseemly metaphor had gone far enough.
  1164. Teabing already had Sophie locked in his twinkling gaze. You are a Grail virgin, my dear. And trust me, you will never forget your first time.
  1165.  
  1166. CHAPTER 55
  1167.  
  1168. Seated on the divan beside Langdon, Sophie drank her tea and ate a scone, feeling the welcome effects of caffeine and food. Sir Leigh Teabing was beaming as he awkwardly paced before the open fire, his leg braces clicking on the stone hearth.
  1169. The Holy Grail, Teabing said, his voice sermonic. Most people ask me only where it is. I fear that is a question I may never answer. He turned and looked directly at Sophie. However... the far more relevant question is this: What is the Holy Grail?
  1170. Sophie sensed a rising air of academic anticipation now in both of her male companions.
  1171. To fully understand the Grail, Teabing continued, we must first understand the Bible. How well do you know the New Testament?
  1172. Sophie shrugged. Not at all, really. I was raised by a man who worshipped Leonardo da Vinci.
  1173. Teabing looked both startled and pleased. An enlightened soul. Superb! Then you must be aware that Leonardo was one of the keepers of the secret of the Holy Grail. And he hid clues in his art.
  1174. Robert told me as much, yes.
  1175. And Da Vinci's views on the New Testament?
  1176. I have no idea.
  1177. Teabing's eyes turned mirthful as he motioned to the bookshelf across the room. Robert, would you mind? On the bottom shelf. La Storia di Leonardo.
  1178. Langdon went across the room, found a large art book, and brought it back, setting it down on the table between them. Twisting the book to face Sophie, Teabing flipped open the heavy cover and pointed inside the rear cover to a series of quotations. From Da Vinci's notebook on polemics and speculation, Teabing said, indicating one quote in particular. I think you'll find this relevant to our discussion.
  1179. Sophie read the words.
  1180. Many have made a trade of delusions
  1181. and false miracles, deceiving the stupid multitude.
  1182. —LEONARDO DA VINCI
  1183.  
  1184. Here's another, Teabing said, pointing to a different quote.
  1185. Blinding ignorance does mislead us.
  1186. O! Wretched mortals, open your eyes!
  1187. —LEONARDO DA VINCI
  1188.  
  1189. Sophie felt a little chill. Da Vinci is talking about the Bible?
  1190. Teabing nodded. Leonardo's feelings about the Bible relate directly to the Holy Grail. In fact, Da Vinci painted the true Grail, which I will show you momentarily, but first we must speak of the Bible. Teabing smiled. And everything you need to know about the Bible can be summed up by the great canon doctor Martyn Percy. Teabing cleared his throat and declared, The Bible did not arrive by fax from heaven.
  1191. I beg your pardon?
  1192. The Bible is a product of man, my dear. Not of God. The Bible did not fall magically from the clouds. Man created it as a historical record of tumultuous times, and it has evolved through countless translations, additions, and revisions. History has never had a definitive version of the book.
  1193. Okay.
  1194. Jesus Christ was a historical figure of staggering influence, perhaps the most enigmatic and inspirational leader the world has ever seen. As the prophesied Messiah, Jesus toppled kings, inspired millions, and founded new philosophies. As a descendant of the lines of King Solomon and King David, Jesus possessed a rightful claim to the throne of the King of the Jews. Understandably, His life was recorded by thousands of followers across the land. Teabing paused to sip his tea and then placed the cup back on the mantel. More than eighty gospels were considered for the New Testament, and yet only a relative few were chosen for inclusion—Matthew, Mark, Luke, and John among them.
  1195. Who chose which gospels to include? Sophie asked.
  1196. Aha! Teabing burst in with enthusiasm. The fundamental irony of Christianity! The Bible, as we know it today, was collated by the pagan Roman emperor Constantine the Great.
  1197. I thought Constantine was a Christian, Sophie said.
  1198. Hardly, Teabing scoffed. He was a lifelong pagan who was baptized on his deathbed, too weak to protest. In Constantine's day, Rome's official religion was sun worship—the cult of Sol Invictus, or the Invincible Sun—and Constantine was its head priest. Unfortunately for him, a growing religious turmoil was gripping Rome. Three centuries after the crucifixion of Jesus Christ, Christ's followers had multiplied exponentially. Christians and pagans began warring, and the conflict grew to such proportions that it threatened to rend Rome in two. Constantine decided something had to be done. In 325 A.D., he decided to unify Rome under a single religion. Christianity.
  1199. Sophie was surprised. Why would a pagan emperor choose Christianity as the official religion?
  1200. Teabing chuckled. Constantine was a very good businessman. He could see that Christianity was on the rise, and he simply backed the winning horse. Historians still marvel at the brilliance with which Constantine converted the sun-worshipping pagans to Christianity. By fusing pagan symbols, dates, and rituals into the growing Christian tradition, he created a kind of hybrid religion that was acceptable to both parties.
  1201. Transmogrification, Langdon said. The vestiges of pagan religion in Christian symbology are undeniable. Egyptian sun disks became the halos of Catholic saints. Pictograms of Isis nursing her miraculously conceived son Horus became the blueprint for our modern images of the Virgin Mary nursing Baby Jesus. And virtually all the elements of the Catholic ritual—the miter, the altar, the doxology, and communion, the act of God-eating—were taken directly from earlier pagan mystery religions.
  1202. Teabing groaned. Don't get a symbologist started on Christian icons. Nothing in Christianity is original. The pre-Christian God Mithras—called the Son of God and the Light of the World—was born on December 25, died, was buried in a rock tomb, and then resurrected in three days. By the way, December 25 is also the birthday of Osiris, Adonis, and Dionysus. The newborn Krishna was presented with gold, frankincense, and myrrh. Even Christianity's weekly holy day was stolen from the pagans.
  1203. What do you mean?
  1204. Originally, Langdon said, Christianity honored the Jewish Sabbath of Saturday, but Constantine shifted it to coincide with the pagan's veneration day of the sun. He paused, grinning. To this day, most churchgoers attend services on Sunday morning with no idea that they are there on account of the pagan sun god's weekly tribute—Sunday.
  1205. Sophie's head was spinning. And all of this relates to the Grail?
  1206. Indeed, Teabing said. Stay with me. During this fusion of religions, Constantine needed to strengthen the new Christian tradition, and held a famous ecumenical gathering known as the Council of Nicaea.
  1207. Sophie had heard of it only insofar as its being the birthplace of the Nicene Creed.
  1208. At this gathering, Teabing said, many aspects of Christianity were debated and voted upon—the date of Easter, the role of the bishops, the administration of sacraments, and, of course, the divinity of Jesus.
  1209. I don't follow. His divinity?
  1210. My dear, Teabing declared, until that moment in history, Jesus was viewed by His followers as a mortal prophet... a great and powerful man, but a man nonetheless. A mortal.
  1211. Not the Son of God?
  1212. Right, Teabing said. Jesus' establishment as 'the Son of God' was officially proposed and voted on by the Council of Nicaea.
  1213. Hold on. You're saying Jesus' divinity was the result of a vote?
  1214. A relatively close vote at that, Teabing added. Nonetheless, establishing Christ's divinity was critical to the further unification of the Roman empire and to the new Vatican power base. By officially endorsing Jesus as the Son of God, Constantine turned Jesus into a deity who existed beyond the scope of the human world, an entity whose power was unchallengeable. This not only precluded further pagan challenges to Christianity, but now the followers of Christ were able to redeem themselves only via the established sacred channel—the Roman Catholic Church.
  1215. Sophie glanced at Langdon, and he gave her a soft nod of concurrence.
  1216. It was all about power, Teabing continued. Christ as Messiah was critical to the functioning of Church and state. Many scholars claim that the early Church literally stole Jesus from His original followers, hijacking His human message, shrouding it in an impenetrable cloak of divinity, and using it to expand their own power. I've written several books on the topic.
  1217. And I assume devout Christians send you hate mail on a daily basis?
  1218. Why would they? Teabing countered. The vast majority of educated Christians know the history of their faith. Jesus was indeed a great and powerful man. Constantine's underhanded political maneuvers don't diminish the majesty of Christ's life. Nobody is saying Christ was a fraud, or denying that He walked the earth and inspired millions to better lives. All we are saying is that Constantine took advantage of Christ's substantial influence and importance. And in doing so, he shaped the face of Christianity as we know it today.
  1219. Sophie glanced at the art book before her, eager to move on and see the Da Vinci painting of the Holy Grail.
  1220. The twist is this, Teabing said, talking faster now. Because Constantine upgraded Jesus' status almost four centuries after Jesus' death, thousands of documents already existed chronicling His life as a mortal man. To rewrite the history books, Constantine knew he would need a bold stroke. From this sprang the most profound moment in Christian history. Teabing paused, eyeing Sophie. Constantine commissioned and financed a new Bible, which omitted those gospels that spoke of Christ's human traits and embellished those gospels that made Him godlike. The earlier gospels were outlawed, gathered up, and burned.
  1221. An interesting note, Langdon added. Anyone who chose the forbidden gospels over Constantine's version was deemed a heretic. The word heretic derives from that moment in history. The Latin word haereticus means 'choice.' Those who 'chose' the original history of Christ were the world's first heretics.
  1222. Fortunately for historians, Teabing said, some of the gospels that Constantine attempted to eradicate managed to survive. The Dead Sea Scrolls were found in the 1950s hidden in a cave near Qumran in the Judean desert. And, of course, the Coptic Scrolls in 1945 at Nag Hammadi. In addition to telling the true Grail story, these documents speak of Christ's ministry in very human terms. Of course, the Vatican, in keeping with their tradition of misinformation, tried very hard to suppress the release of these scrolls. And why wouldn't they? The scrolls highlight glaring historical discrepancies and fabrications, clearly confirming that the modern Bible was compiled and edited by men who possessed a political agenda—to promote the divinity of the man Jesus Christ and use His influence to solidify their own power base.
  1223. And yet, Langdon countered, it's important to remember that the modern Church's desire to suppress these documents comes from a sincere belief in their established view of Christ. The Vatican is made up of deeply pious men who truly believe these contrary documents could only be false testimony.
  1224. Teabing chuckled as he eased himself into a chair opposite Sophie. As you can see, our professor has a far softer heart for Rome than I do. Nonetheless, he is correct about the modern clergy believing these opposing documents are false testimony. That's understandable. Constantine's Bible has been their truth for ages. Nobody is more indoctrinated than the indoctrinator.
  1225. What he means, Langdon said, is that we worship the gods of our fathers.
  1226. What I mean, Teabing countered, is that almost everything our fathers taught us about Christ is false. As are the stories about the Holy Grail.
  1227. Sophie looked again at the Da Vinci quote before her. Blinding ignorance does mislead us. O! Wretched mortals, open your eyes!
  1228. Teabing reached for the book and flipped toward the center. And finally, before I show you Da Vinci's paintings of the Holy Grail, I'd like you to take a quick look at this. He opened the book to a colorful graphic that spanned both full pages. I assume you recognize this fresco?
  1229. He's kidding, right? Sophie was staring at the most famous fresco of all time—The Last Supper—Da Vinci's legendary painting from the wall of Santa Maria delle Grazie near Milan. The decaying fresco portrayed Jesus and His disciples at the moment that Jesus announced one of them would betray Him. I know the fresco, yes.
  1230. Then perhaps you would indulge me this little game? Close your eyes if you would.
  1231. Uncertain, Sophie closed her eyes.
  1232. Where is Jesus sitting? Teabing asked.
  1233. In the center.
  1234. Good. And what food are He and His disciples breaking and eating?
  1235. Bread. Obviously.
  1236. Superb. And what drink?
  1237. Wine. They drank wine.
  1238. Great. And one final question. How many wineglasses are on the table?
  1239. Sophie paused, realizing it was the trick question. And after dinner, Jesus took the cup of wine, sharing it with His disciples. One cup, she said. The chalice. The Cup of Christ. The Holy Grail. Jesus passed a single chalice of wine, just as modern Christians do at communion.
  1240. Teabing sighed. Open your eyes.
  1241. She did. Teabing was grinning smugly. Sophie looked down at the painting, seeing to her astonishment that everyone at the table had a glass of wine, including Christ. Thirteen cups. Moreover, the cups were tiny, stemless, and made of glass. There was no chalice in the painting. No Holy Grail.
  1242. Teabing's eyes twinkled. A bit strange, don't you think, considering that both the Bible and our standard Grail legend celebrate this moment as the definitive arrival of the Holy Grail. Oddly, Da Vinci appears to have forgotten to paint the Cup of Christ.
  1243. Surely art scholars must have noted that.
  1244. You will be shocked to learn what anomalies Da Vinci included here that most scholars either do not see or simply choose to ignore. This fresco, in fact, is the entire key to the Holy Grail mystery. Da Vinci lays it all out in the open in The Last Supper
  1245. Sophie scanned the work eagerly. Does this fresco tell us what the Grail really is?
  1246. Not what it is, Teabing whispered. But rather who it is. The Holy Grail is not a thing. It is, in fact... a person
  1247.  
  1248. CHAPTER 56
  1249.  
  1250. Sophie stared at Teabing a long moment and then turned to Langdon. The Holy Grail is a person?
  1251. Langdon nodded. A woman, in fact. From the blank look on Sophie's face, Langdon could tell they had already lost her. He recalled having a similar reaction the first time he heard the statement. It was not until he understood the symbology behind the Grail that the feminine connection became clear.
  1252. Teabing apparently had a similar thought. Robert, perhaps this is the moment for the symbologist to clarify? He went to a nearby end table, found a piece of paper, and laid it in front of Langdon.
  1253. Langdon pulled a pen from his pocket. Sophie, are you familiar with the modern icons for male and female? He drew the common male symbol and female symbol .
  1254. Of course, she said.
  1255. These, he said quietly, are not the original symbols for male and female. Many people incorrectly assume the male symbol is derived from a shield and spear, while the female symbol represents a mirror reflecting beauty. In fact, the symbols originated as ancient astronomical symbols for the planet-god Mars and planet-goddess Venus. The original symbols are far simpler. Langdon drew another icon on the paper.
  1256.  
  1257. This symbol is the original icon for male, he told her. A rudimentary phallus.
  1258. Quite to the point, Sophie said.
  1259. As it were, Teabing added.
  1260. Langdon went on. This icon is formally known as the blade, and it represents aggression and manhood. In fact, this exact phallus symbol is still used today on modern military uniforms to denote rank.
  1261. Indeed. Teabing grinned. The more penises you have, the higher your rank. Boys will be boys.
  1262. Langdon winced. Moving on, the female symbol, as you might imagine, is the exact opposite. He drew another symbol on the page. This is called the chalice.
  1263.  
  1264. Sophie glanced up, looking surprised.
  1265. Langdon could see she had made the connection. The chalice, he said, resembles a cup or vessel, and more important, it resembles the shape of a woman's womb. This symbol communicates femininity, womanhood, and fertility. Langdon looked directly at her now. Sophie, legend tells us the Holy Grail is a chalice—a cup. But the Grail's description as a chalice is actually an allegory to protect the true nature of the Holy Grail. That is to say, the legend uses the chalice as a metaphor for something far more important.
  1266. A woman, Sophie said.
  1267. Exactly. Langdon smiled. The Grail is literally the ancient symbol for womanhood, and the Holy Grail represents the sacred feminine and the goddess, which of course has now been lost, virtually eliminated by the Church. The power of the female and her ability to produce life was once very sacred, but it posed a threat to the rise of the predominantly male Church, and so the sacred feminine was demonized and called unclean. It was man, not God, who created the concept of 'original sin,' whereby Eve tasted of the apple and caused the downfall of the human race. Woman, once the sacred giver of life, was now the enemy.
  1268. I should add, Teabing chimed, that this concept of woman as life-bringer was the foundation of ancient religion. Childbirth was mystical and powerful. Sadly, Christian philosophy decided to embezzle the female's creative power by ignoring biological truth and making man the Creator. Genesis tells us that Eve was created from Adam's rib. Woman became an offshoot of man. And a sinful one at that. Genesis was the beginning of the end for the goddess.
  1269. The Grail, Langdon said, is symbolic of the lost goddess. When Christianity came along, the old pagan religions did not die easily. Legends of chivalric quests for the lost Grail were in fact stories of forbidden quests to find the lost sacred feminine. Knights who claimed to be searching for the chalice were speaking in code as a way to protect themselves from a Church that had subjugated women, banished the Goddess, burned nonbelievers, and forbidden the pagan reverence for the sacred feminine.
  1270. Sophie shook her head. I'm sorry, when you said the Holy Grail was a person, I thought you meant it was an actual person.
  1271. It is, Langdon said.
  1272. And not just any person, Teabing blurted, clambering excitedly to his feet. A woman who carried with her a secret so powerful that, if revealed, it threatened to devastate the very foundation of Christianity!
  1273. Sophie looked overwhelmed. Is this woman well known in history?
  1274. Quite. Teabing collected his crutches and motioned down the hall. And if we adjourn to the study, my friends, it would be my honor to show you Da Vinci's painting of her.
  1275.  
  1276. Two rooms away, in the kitchen, manservant R?my Legaludec stood in silence before a television. The news station was broadcasting photos of a man and woman... the same two individuals to whom R?my had just served tea.
  1277.  
  1278. CHAPTER 57
  1279.  
  1280. Standing at the roadblock outside the Depository Bank of Zurich, Lieutenant Collet wondered what was taking Fache so long to come up with the search warrant. The bankers were obviously hiding something. They claimed Langdon and Neveu had arrived earlier and were turned away from the bank because they did not have proper account identification.
  1281. So why won't they let us inside for a look?
  1282. Finally, Collet's cellular phone rang. It was the command post at the Louvre. Do we have a search warrant yet? Collet demanded.
  1283. Forget about the bank, Lieutenant, the agent told him. We just got a tip. We have the exact location where Langdon and Neveu are hiding.
  1284. Collet sat down hard on the hood of his car. You're kidding.
  1285. I have an address in the suburbs. Somewhere near Versailles.
  1286. Does Captain Fache know?
  1287. Not yet. He's busy on an important call.
  1288. I'm on my way. Have him call as soon as he's free. Collet took down the address and jumped in his car. As he peeled away from the bank, Collet realized he had forgotten to ask who had tipped DCPJ off to Langdon's location. Not that it mattered. Collet had been blessed with a chance to redeem his skepticism and earlier blunders. He was about to make the most high-profile arrest of his career.
  1289. Collet radioed the five cars accompanying him. No sirens, men. Langdon can't know we're coming.
  1290.  
  1291. Forty kilometers away, a black Audi pulled off a rural road and parked in the shadows on the edge of a field. Silas got out and peered through the rungs of the wrought-iron fence that encircled the vast compound before him. He gazed up the long moonlit slope to the ch?teau in the distance.
  1292. The downstairs lights were all ablaze. Odd for this hour, Silas thought, smiling. The information the Teacher had given him was obviously accurate. I will not leave this house without the keystone, he vowed. I will not fail the bishop and the Teacher.
  1293. Checking the thirteen-round clip in his Heckler Koch, Silas pushed it through the bars and let it fall onto the mossy ground inside the compound. Then, gripping the top of the fence, he heaved himself up and over, dropping to the ground on the other side. Ignoring the slash of pain from his cilice, Silas retrieved his gun and began the long trek up the grassy slope.
  1294.  
  1295. CHAPTER 58
  1296.  
  1297. Teabing's study was like no study Sophie had ever seen. Six or seven times larger than even the most luxurious of office spaces, the knight's cabinet de travail resembled an ungainly hybrid of science laboratory, archival library, and indoor flea market. Lit by three overhead chandeliers, the boundless tile floor was dotted with clustered islands of worktables buried beneath books, artwork, artifacts, and a surprising amount of electronic gear—computers, projectors, microscopes, copy machines, and flatbed scanners.
  1298. I converted the ballroom, Teabing said, looking sheepish as he shuffled into the room. I have little occasion to dance.
  1299. Sophie felt as if the entire night had become some kind of twilight zone where nothing was as she expected. This is all for your work?
  1300. Learning the truth has become my life's love, Teabing said. And the Sangreal is my favorite mistress.
  1301. The Holy Grail is a woman, Sophie thought, her mind a collage of interrelated ideas that seemed to make no sense. You said you have a picture of this woman who you claim is the Holy Grail.
  1302. Yes, but it is not I who claim she is the Grail. Christ Himself made that claim.
  1303. Which one is the painting? Sophie asked, scanning the walls.
  1304. Hmmm... Teabing made a show of seeming to have forgotten. The Holy Grail. The Sangreal. The Chalice. He wheeled suddenly and pointed to the far wall. On it hung an eight-foot-long print of The Last Supper, the same exact image Sophie had just been looking at. There she is!
  1305. Sophie was certain she had missed something. That's the same painting you just showed me.
  1306. He winked. I know, but the enlargement is so much more exciting. Don't you think?
  1307. Sophie turned to Langdon for help. I'm lost.
  1308. Langdon smiled. As it turns out, the Holy Grail does indeed make an appearance in The Last Supper. Leonardo included her prominently.
  1309. Hold on, Sophie said. You told me the Holy Grail is a woman. The Last Supper is a painting of thirteen men.
  1310. Is it? Teabing arched his eyebrows. Take a closer look.
  1311. Uncertain, Sophie made her way closer to the painting, scanning the thirteen figures—Jesus Christ in the middle, six disciples on His left, and six on His right. They're all men, she confirmed.
  1312. Oh? Teabing said. How about the one seated in the place of honor, at the right hand of the Lord?
  1313. Sophie examined the figure to Jesus' immediate right, focusing in. As she studied the person's face and body, a wave of astonishment rose within her. The individual had flowing red hair, delicate folded hands, and the hint of a bosom. It was, without a doubt... female.
  1314. That's a woman! Sophie exclaimed.
  1315. Teabing was laughing. Surprise, surprise. Believe me, it's no mistake. Leonardo was skilled at painting the difference between the sexes.
  1316. Sophie could not take her eyes from the woman beside Christ. The Last Supper is supposed to be thirteen men. Who is this woman? Although Sophie had seen this classic image many times, she had not once noticed this glaring discrepancy.
  1317. Everyone misses it, Teabing said. Our preconceived notions of this scene are so powerful that our mind blocks out the incongruity and overrides our eyes.
  1318. It's known as skitoma, Langdon added. The brain does it sometimes with powerful symbols.
  1319. Another reason you might have missed the woman, Teabing said, is that many of the photographs in art books were taken before 1954, when the details were still hidden beneath layers of grime and several restorative repaintings done by clumsy hands in the eighteenth century. Now, at last, the fresco has been cleaned down to Da Vinci's original layer of paint. He motioned to the photograph. Et voil?!
  1320. Sophie moved closer to the image. The woman to Jesus' right was young and pious-looking, with a demure face, beautiful red hair, and hands folded quietly. This is the woman who singlehandedly could crumble the Church?
  1321. Who is she? Sophie asked.
  1322. That, my dear, Teabing replied, is Mary Magdalene.
  1323. Sophie turned. The prostitute?
  1324. Teabing drew a short breath, as if the word had injured him personally. Magdalene was no such thing. That unfortunate misconception is the legacy of a smear campaign launched by the early Church. The Church needed to defame Mary Magdalene in order to cover up her dangerous secret—her role as the Holy Grail.
  1325. Her role?
  1326. As I mentioned, Teabing clarified, the early Church needed to convince the world that the mortal prophet Jesus was a divine being. Therefore, any gospels that described earthly aspects of Jesus' life had to be omitted from the Bible. Unfortunately for the early editors, one particularly troubling earthly theme kept recurring in the gospels. Mary Magdalene. He paused. More specifically, her marriage to Jesus Christ.
  1327. I beg your pardon? Sophie's eyes moved to Langdon and then back to Teabing.
  1328. It's a matter of historical record, Teabing said, and Da Vinci was certainly aware of that fact. The Last Supper practically shouts at the viewer that Jesus and Magdalene were a pair.
  1329. Sophie glanced back to the fresco.
  1330. Notice that Jesus and Magdalene are clothed as mirror images of one another. Teabing pointed to the two individuals in the center of the fresco.
  1331. Sophie was mesmerized. Sure enough, their clothes were inverse colors. Jesus wore a red robe and blue cloak; Mary Magdalene wore a blue robe and red cloak. Yin and yang.
  1332. Venturing into the more bizarre, Teabing said, note that Jesus and His bride appear to be joined at the hip and are leaning away from one another as if to create this clearly delineated negative space between them.
  1333. Even before Teabing traced the contour for her, Sophie saw it—the indisputable V shape at the focal point of the painting. It was the same symbol Langdon had drawn earlier for the Grail, the chalice, and the female womb.
  1334. Finally, Teabing said, if you view Jesus and Magdalene as compositional elements rather than as people, you will see another obvious shape leap out at you. He paused. A letter of the alphabet.
  1335. Sophie saw it at once. To say the letter leapt out at her was an understatement. The letter was suddenly all Sophie could see. Glaring in the center of the painting was the unquestionable outline of an enormous, flawlessly formed letter M.
  1336. A bit too perfect for coincidence, wouldn't you say? Teabing asked.
  1337. Sophie was amazed. Why is it there?
  1338. Teabing shrugged. Conspiracy theorists will tell you it stands for Matrimonio or Mary Magdalene. To be honest, nobody is certain. The only certainty is that the hidden M is no mistake. Countless Grail-related works contain the hidden letter M—whether as watermarks, underpaintings, or compositional allusions. The most blatant M, of course, is emblazoned on the altar at Our Lady of Paris in London, which was designed by a former Grand Master of the Priory of Sion, Jean Cocteau.
  1339. Sophie weighed the information. I'll admit, the hidden M's are intriguing, although I assume nobody is claiming they are proof of Jesus' marriage to Magdalene.
  1340. No, no, Teabing said, going to a nearby table of books. As I said earlier, the marriage of Jesus and Mary Magdalene is part of the historical record. He began pawing through his book collection. Moreover, Jesus as a married man makes infinitely more sense than our standard biblical view of Jesus as a bachelor.
  1341. Why? Sophie asked.
  1342. Because Jesus was a Jew, Langdon said, taking over while Teabing searched for his book, and the social decorum during that time virtually forbid a Jewish man to be unmarried. According to Jewish custom, celibacy was condemned, and the obligation for a Jewish father was to find a suitable wife for his son. If Jesus were not married, at least one of the Bible's gospels would have mentioned it and offered some explanation for His unnatural state of bachelorhood.
  1343. Teabing located a huge book and pulled it toward him across the table. The leather-bound edition was poster-sized, like a huge atlas. The cover read: The Gnostic Gospels. Teabing heaved it open, and Langdon and Sophie joined him. Sophie could see it contained photographs of what appeared to be magnified passages of ancient documents—tattered papyrus with handwritten text. She did not recognize the ancient language, but the facing pages bore typed translations.
  1344. These are photocopies of the Nag Hammadi and Dead Sea scrolls, which I mentioned earlier, Teabing said. The earliest Christian records. Troublingly, they do not match up with the gospels in the Bible. Flipping toward the middle of the book, Teabing pointed to a passage. The Gospel of Philip is always a good place to start. Sophie read the passage:
  1345. And the companion of the Saviour is Mary Magdalene. Christ loved her more than all the disciples and used to kiss her often on her mouth. The rest of the disciples were offended by it and expressed disapproval. They said to him, Why do you love her more than all of us?
  1346. The words surprised Sophie, and yet they hardly seemed conclusive. It says nothing of marriage.
  1347. Au contraire. Teabing smiled, pointing to the first line. As any Aramaic scholar will tell you, the word companion, in those days, literally meant spouse.
  1348. Langdon concurred with a nod.
  1349. Sophie read the first line again. And the companion of the Saviour is Mary Magdalene.
  1350. Teabing flipped through the book and pointed out several other passages that, to Sophie's surprise, clearly suggested Magdalene and Jesus had a romantic relationship. As she read the passages, Sophie recalled an angry priest who had banged on her grandfather's door when she was a schoolgirl.
  1351. Is this the home of Jacques Saunière? the priest had demanded, glaring down at young Sophie when she pulled open the door. I want to talk to him about this editorial he wrote. The priest held up a newspaper.
  1352. Sophie summoned her grandfather, and the two men disappeared into his study and closed the door. My grandfather wrote something in the paper? Sophie immediately ran to the kitchen and flipped through that morning's paper. She found her grandfather's name on an article on the second page. She read it. Sophie didn't understand all of what was said, but it sounded like the French government, under pressure from priests, had agreed to ban an American movie called The Last Temptation of Christ, which was about Jesus having sex with a lady called Mary Magdalene. Her grandfather's article said the Church was arrogant and wrong to ban it.
  1353. No wonder the priest is mad, Sophie thought.
  1354. It's pornography! Sacrilege! the priest yelled, emerging from the study and storming to the front door. How can you possibly endorse that! This American Martin Scorsese is a blasphemer, and the Church will permit him no pulpit in France! The priest slammed the door on his way out.
  1355. When her grandfather came into the kitchen, he saw Sophie with the paper and frowned. You're quick.
  1356. Sophie said, You think Jesus Christ had a girlfriend?
  1357. No, dear, I said the Church should not be allowed to tell us what notions we can and can't entertain.
  1358. Did Jesus have a girlfriend?
  1359. Her grandfather was silent for several moments. Would it be so bad if He did?
  1360. Sophie considered it and then shrugged. I wouldn't mind.
  1361.  
  1362. Sir Leigh Teabing was still talking. I shan't bore you with the countless references to Jesus and Magdalene's union. That has been explored ad nauseum by modern historians. I would, however, like to point out the following. He motioned to another passage. This is from the Gospel of Mary Magdalene.
  1363. Sophie had not known a gospel existed in Magdalene's words. She read the text:
  1364. And Peter said, Did the Saviour really speak with a woman without our knowledge? Are we to turn about and all listen to her? Did he prefer her to us?
  1365. And Levi answered, Peter, you have always been hot-tempered. Now I see you contending against the woman like an adversary. If the Saviour made her worthy, who are you indeed to reject her? Surely the Saviour knows her very well. That is why he loved her more than us.
  1366. The woman they are speaking of, Teabing explained, is Mary Magdalene. Peter is jealous of her.
  1367. Because Jesus preferred Mary?
  1368. Not only that. The stakes were far greater than mere affection. At this point in the gospels, Jesus suspects He will soon be captured and crucified. So He gives Mary Magdalene instructions on how to carry on His Church after He is gone. As a result, Peter expresses his discontent over playing second fiddle to a woman. I daresay Peter was something of a sexist.
  1369. Sophie was trying to keep up. This is Saint Peter. The rock on which Jesus built His Church.
  1370. The same, except for one catch. According to these unaltered gospels, it was not Peter to whom Christ gave directions with which to establish the Christian Church. It was Mary Magdalene.
  1371. Sophie looked at him. You're saying the Christian Church was to be carried on by a woman?
  1372. That was the plan. Jesus was the original feminist. He intended for the future of His Church to be in the hands of Mary Magdalene.
  1373. And Peter had a problem with that, Langdon said, pointing to The Last Supper. That's Peter there. You can see that Da Vinci was well aware of how Peter felt about Mary Magdalene.
  1374. Again, Sophie was speechless. In the painting, Peter was leaning menacingly toward Mary Magdalene and slicing his blade-like hand across her neck. The same threatening gesture as in Madonna of the Rocks!
  1375. And here too, Langdon said, pointing now to the crowd of disciples near Peter. A bit ominous, no?
  1376. Sophie squinted and saw a hand emerging from the crowd of disciples. Is that hand wielding a dagger?
  1377. Yes. Stranger still, if you count the arms, you'll see that this hand belongs to... no one at all. It's disembodied. Anonymous.
  1378. Sophie was starting to feel overwhelmed. I'm sorry, I still don't understand how all of this makes Mary Magdalene the Holy Grail.
  1379. Aha! Teabing exclaimed again. Therein lies the rub! He turned once more to the table and pulled out a large chart, spreading it out for her. It was an elaborate genealogy. Few people realize that Mary Magdalene, in addition to being Christ's right hand, was a powerful woman already.
  1380. Sophie could now see the title of the family tree.
  1381. THE TRIBE OF BENJAMIN
  1382.  
  1383. Mary Magdalene is here, Teabing said, pointing near the top of the genealogy.
  1384. Sophie was surprised. She was of the House of Benjamin?
  1385. Indeed, Teabing said. Mary Magdalene was of royal descent.
  1386. But I was under the impression Magdalene was poor.
  1387. Teabing shook his head. Magdalene was recast as a whore in order to erase evidence of her powerful family ties.
  1388. Sophie found herself again glancing at Langdon, who again nodded. She turned back to Teabing. But why would the early Church care if Magdalene had royal blood?
  1389. The Briton smiled. My dear child, it was not Mary Magdalene's royal blood that concerned the Church so much as it was her consorting with Christ, who also had royal blood. As you know, the Book of Matthew tells us that Jesus was of the House of David. A descendant of King Solomon—King of the Jews. By marrying into the powerful House of Benjamin, Jesus fused two royal bloodlines, creating a potent political union with the potential of making a legitimate claim to the throne and restoring the line of kings as it was under Solomon.
  1390. Sophie sensed he was at last coming to his point.
  1391. Teabing looked excited now. The legend of the Holy Grail is a legend about royal blood. When Grail legend speaks of 'the chalice that held the blood of Christ'... it speaks, in fact, of Mary Magdalene—the female womb that carried Jesus' royal bloodline.
  1392. The words seemed to echo across the ballroom and back before they fully registered in Sophie's mind. Mary Magdalene carried the royal bloodline of Jesus Christ? But how could Christ have a bloodline unless...? She paused and looked at Langdon.
  1393. Langdon smiled softly. Unless they had a child.
  1394. Sophie stood transfixed.
  1395. Behold, Teabing proclaimed, the greatest cover-up in human history. Not only was Jesus Christ married, but He was a father. My dear, Mary Magdalene was the Holy Vessel. She was the chalice that bore the royal bloodline of Jesus Christ. She was the womb that bore the lineage, and the vine from which the sacred fruit sprang forth!
  1396. Sophie felt the hairs stand up on her arms. But how could a secret that big be kept quiet all of these years?
  1397. Heavens! Teabing said. It has been anything but quiet! The royal bloodline of Jesus Christ is the source of the most enduring legend of all time—the Holy Grail. Magdalene's story has been shouted from the rooftops for centuries in all kinds of metaphors and languages. Her story is everywhere once you open your eyes.
  1398. And the Sangreal documents? Sophie said. They allegedly contain proof that Jesus had a royal bloodline?
  1399. They do.
  1400. So the entire Holy Grail legend is all about royal blood?
  1401. Quite literally, Teabing said. The word Sangreal derives from San Greal—or Holy Grail. But in its most ancient form, the word Sangreal was divided in a different spot. Teabing wrote on a piece of scrap paper and handed it to her.
  1402. She read what he had written.
  1403. Sang Real
  1404.  
  1405. Instantly, Sophie recognized the translation. Sang Real literally meant Royal Blood.
  1406.  
  1407. CHAPTER 59
  1408.  
  1409. The male receptionist in the lobby of the Opus Dei headquarters on Lexington Avenue in New York City was surprised to hear Bishop Aringarosa's voice on the line. Good evening, sir.
  1410. Have I had any messages? the bishop demanded, sounding unusually anxious.
  1411. Yes, sir. I'm very glad you called in. I couldn't reach you in your apartment. You had an urgent phone message about half an hour ago.
  1412. Yes? He sounded relieved by the news. Did the caller leave a name?
  1413. No, sir, just a number. The operator relayed the number.
  1414. Prefix thirty-three? That's France, am I right?
  1415. Yes, sir. Paris. The caller said it was critical you contact him immediately.
  1416. Thank you. I have been waiting for that call. Aringarosa quickly severed the connection.
  1417. As the receptionist hung up the receiver, he wondered why Aringarosa's phone connection sounded so crackly. The bishop's daily schedule showed him in New York this weekend, and yet he sounded a world away. The receptionist shrugged it off. Bishop Aringarosa had been acting very strangely the last few months.
  1418.  
  1419. My cellular phone must not have been receiving, Aringarosa thought as the Fiat approached the exit for Rome's Ciampino Charter Airport. The Teacher was trying to reach me. Despite Aringarosa's concern at having missed the call, he felt encouraged that the Teacher felt confident enough to call Opus Dei headquarters directly.
  1420. Things must have gone well in Paris tonight.
  1421. As Aringarosa began dialing the number, he felt excited to know he would soon be in Paris. I'll be on the ground before dawn. Aringarosa had a chartered turbo prop awaiting him here for the short flight to France. Commercial carriers were not an option at this hour, especially considering the contents of his briefcase.
  1422. The line began to ring.
  1423. A female voice answered. Direction Centrale Police Judidaire.
  1424. Aringarosa felt himself hesitate. This was unexpected. Ah, yes... I was asked to call this number?
  1425. Qui ?tes-vous? the woman said. Your name?
  1426. Aringarosa was uncertain if he should reveal it. The French Judicial Police?
  1427. Your name, monsieur? the woman pressed.
  1428. Bishop Manuel Aringarosa.
  1429. Un moment. There was a click on the line.
  1430. After a long wait, another man came on, his tone gruff and concerned. Bishop, I am glad I finally reached you. You and I have much to discuss.
  1431.  
  1432. CHAPTER 60
  1433.  
  1434. Sangreal... Sang Real... San Greal... Royal Blood... Holy Grail.
  1435. It was all intertwined.
  1436. The Holy Grail is Mary Magdalene... the mother of the royal bloodline of Jesus Christ. Sophie felt a new wave of disorientation as she stood in the silence of the ballroom and stared at Robert Langdon. The more pieces Langdon and Teabing laid on the table tonight, the more unpredictable this puzzle became.
  1437. As you can see, my dear, Teabing said, hobbling toward a bookshelf, Leonardo is not the only one who has been trying to tell the world the truth about the Holy Grail. The royal bloodline of Jesus Christ has been chronicled in exhaustive detail by scores of historians. He ran a finger down a row of several dozen books.
  1438. Sophie tilted her head and scanned the list of titles:
  1439. THE TEMPLAR REVELATION:
  1440. Secret Guardians of the True Identity of Christ
  1441.  
  1442. THE WOMAN WITH THE ALABASTER JAR:
  1443. Mary Magdalene and the Holy Grail
  1444.  
  1445. THE GODDESS IN THE GOSPELS
  1446. Reclaiming the Sacred Feminine
  1447.  
  1448. Here is perhaps the best-known tome, Teabing said, pulling a tattered hardcover from the stack and handing it to her. The cover read:
  1449. HOLY BLOOD, HOLY GRAIL
  1450. The Acclaimed International Bestseller
  1451.  
  1452. Sophie glanced up. An international bestseller? I've never heard of it.
  1453. You were young. This caused quite a stir back in the nineteen eighties. To my taste, the authors made some dubious leaps of faith in their analysis, but their fundamental premise is sound, and to their credit, they finally brought the idea of Christ's bloodline into the mainstream.
  1454. What was the Church's reaction to the book?
  1455. Outrage, of course. But that was to be expected. After all, this was a secret the Vatican had tried to bury in the fourth century. That's part of what the Crusades were about. Gathering and destroying information. The threat Mary Magdalene posed to the men of the early Church was potentially ruinous. Not only was she the woman to whom Jesus had assigned the task of founding the Church, but she also had physical proof that the Church's newly proclaimed deity had spawned a mortal bloodline. The Church, in order to defend itself against the Magdalene's power, perpetuated her image as a whore and buried evidence of Christ's marriage to her, thereby defusing any potential claims that Christ had a surviving bloodline and was a mortal prophet.
  1456. Sophie glanced at Langdon, who nodded. Sophie, the historical evidence supporting this is substantial.
  1457. I admit, Teabing said, the assertions are dire, but you must understand the Church's powerful motivations to conduct such a cover-up. They could never have survived public knowledge of a bloodline. A child of Jesus would undermine the critical notion of Christ's divinity and therefore the Christian Church, which declared itself the sole vessel through which humanity could access the divine and gain entrance to the kingdom of heaven.
  1458. The five-petal rose, Sophie said, pointing suddenly to the spine of one of Teabing's books. The same exact design inlaid on the rosewood box.
  1459. Teabing glanced at Langdon and grinned. She has a good eye. He turned back to Sophie. That is the Priory symbol for the Grail. Mary Magdalene. Because her name was forbidden by the Church, Mary Magdalene became secretly known by many pseudonyms—the Chalice, the Holy Grail, and the Rose. He paused. The Rose has ties to the five-pointed pentacle of Venus and the guiding Compass Rose. By the way, the word rose is identical in English, French, German, and many other languages.
  1460. Rose, Langdon added, is also an anagram of Eros, the Greek god of sexual love.
  1461. Sophie gave him a surprised look as Teabing plowed on.
  1462. The Rose has always been the premiere symbol of female sexuality. In primitive goddess cults, the five petals represented the five stations of female life—birth, menstruation, motherhood, menopause, and death. And in modern times, the flowering rose's ties to womanhood are considered more visual. He glanced at Robert. Perhaps the symbologist could explain?
  1463. Robert hesitated. A moment too long.
  1464. Oh, heavens! Teabing huffed. You Americans are such prudes. He looked back at Sophie. What Robert is fumbling with is the fact that the blossoming flower resembles the female genitalia, the sublime blossom from which all mankind enters the world. And if you've ever seen any paintings by Georgia O'Keeffe, you'll know exactly what I mean.
  1465. The point here, Langdon said, motioning back to the bookshelf, is that all of these books substantiate the same historical claim.
  1466. That Jesus was a father. Sophie was still uncertain.
  1467. Yes, Teabing said. And that Mary Magdalene was the womb that carried His royal lineage. The Priory of Sion, to this day, still worships Mary Magdalene as the Goddess, the Holy Grail, the Rose, and the Divine Mother.
  1468. Sophie again flashed on the ritual in the basement.
  1469. According to the Priory, Teabing continued, Mary Magdalene was pregnant at the time of the crucifixion. For the safety of Christ's unborn child, she had no choice but to flee the Holy Land. With the help of Jesus' trusted uncle, Joseph of Arimathea, Mary Magdalene secretly traveled to France, then known as Gaul. There she found safe refuge in the Jewish community. It was here in France that she gave birth to a daughter. Her name was Sarah.
  1470. Sophie glanced up. They actually know the child's name?
  1471. Far more than that. Magdalene's and Sarah's lives were scrutinously chronicled by their Jewish protectors. Remember that Magdalene's child belonged to the lineage of Jewish kings—David and Solomon. For this reason, the Jews in France considered Magdalene sacred royalty and revered her as the progenitor of the royal line of kings. Countless scholars of that era chronicled Mary Magdalene's days in France, including the birth of Sarah and the subsequent family tree.
  1472. Sophie was startled. There exists a family tree of Jesus Christ?
  1473. Indeed. And it is purportedly one of the cornerstones of the Sangreal documents. A complete genealogy of the early descendants of Christ.
  1474. But what good is a documented genealogy of Christ's bloodline? Sophie asked. It's not proof. Historians could not possibly confirm its authenticity.
  1475. Teabing chuckled. No more so than they can confirm the authenticity of the Bible.
  1476. Meaning?
  1477. Meaning that history is always written by the winners. When two cultures clash, the loser is obliterated, and the winner writes the history books—books which glorify their own cause and disparage the conquered foe. As Napoleon once said, 'What is history, but a fable agreed upon?' He smiled. By its very nature, history is always a one-sided account.
  1478. Sophie had never thought of it that way.
  1479. The Sangreal documents simply tell the other side of the Christ story. In the end, which side of the story you believe becomes a matter of faith and personal exploration, but at least the information has survived. The Sangreal documents include tens of thousands of pages of information. Eyewitness accounts of the Sangreal treasure describe it as being carried in four enormous trunks. In those trunks are reputed to be the Purist Documents—thousands of pages of unaltered, pre-Constantine documents, written by the early followers of Jesus, revering Him as a wholly human teacher and prophet. Also rumored to be part of the treasure is the legendary Q Document—a manuscript that even the Vatican admits they believe exists. Allegedly, it is a book of Jesus' teachings, possibly written in His own hand.
  1480. Writings by Christ Himself?
  1481. Of course, Teabing said. Why wouldn't Jesus have kept a chronicle of His ministry? Most people did in those days. Another explosive document believed to be in the treasure is a manuscript called The Magdalene Diaries—Mary Magdalene's personal account of her relationship with Christ, His crucifixion, and her time in France.
  1482. Sophie was silent for a long moment. And these four chests of documents were the treasure that the Knights Templar found under Solomon's Temple?
  1483. Exactly. The documents that made the Knights so powerful. The documents that have been the object of countless Grail quests throughout history.
  1484. But you said the Holy Grail was Mary Magdalene. If people are searching for documents, why would you call it a search for the Holy Grail?
  1485. Teabing eyed her, his expression softening. Because the hiding place of the Holy Grail includes a sarcophagus.
  1486. Outside, the wind howled in the trees.
  1487. Teabing spoke more quietly now. The quest for the Holy Grail is literally the quest to kneel before the bones of Mary Magdalene. A journey to pray at the feet of the outcast one, the lost sacred feminine.
  1488. Sophie felt an unexpected wonder. The hiding place of the Holy Grail is actually... a tomb?
  1489. Teabing's hazel eyes got misty. It is. A tomb containing the body of Mary Magdalene and the documents that tell the true story of her life. At its heart, the quest for the Holy Grail has always been a quest for the Magdalene—the wronged Queen, entombed with proof of her family's rightful claim to power.
  1490. Sophie waited a moment as Teabing gathered himself. So much about her grandfather was still not making sense. Members of the Priory, she finally said, all these years have answered the charge of protecting the Sangreal documents and the tomb of Mary Magdalene?
  1491. Yes, but the brotherhood had another, more important duty as well—to protect the bloodline itself. Christ's lineage was in perpetual danger. The early Church feared that if the lineage were permitted to grow, the secret of Jesus and Magdalene would eventually surface and challenge the fundamental Catholic doctrine—that of a divine Messiah who did not consort with women or engage in sexual union. He paused. Nonetheless, Christ's line grew quietly under cover in France until making a bold move in the fifth century, when it intermarried with French royal blood and created a lineage known as the Merovingian bloodline.
  1492. This news surprised Sophie. Merovingian was a term learned by every student in France. The Merovingians founded Paris.
  1493. Yes. That's one of the reasons the Grail legend is so rich in France. Many of the Vatican's Grail quests here were in fact stealth missions to erase members of the royal bloodline. Have you heard of King Dagobert?
  1494. Sophie vaguely recalled the name from a grisly tale in history class. Dagobert was a Merovingian king, wasn't he? Stabbed in the eye while sleeping?
  1495. Exactly. Assassinated by the Vatican in collusion with Pepin d'Heristal. Late seventh century. With Dagobert's murder, the Merovingian bloodline was almost exterminated. Fortunately, Dagobert's son, Sigisbert, secretly escaped the attack and carried on the lineage, which later included Godefroi de Bouillon—founder of the Priory of Sion.
  1496. The same man, Langdon said, who ordered the Knights Templar to recover the Sangreal documents from beneath Solomon's Temple and thus provide the Merovingians proof of their hereditary ties to Jesus Christ.
  1497. Teabing nodded, heaving a ponderous sigh. The modern Priory of Sion has a momentous duty. Theirs is a threefold charge. The brotherhood must protect the Sangreal documents. They must protect the tomb of Mary Magdalene. And, of course, they must nurture and protect the bloodline of Christ—those few members of the royal Merovingian bloodline who have survived into modern times.
  1498. The words hung in the huge space, and Sophie felt an odd vibration, as if her bones were reverberating with some new kind of truth. Descendants of Jesus who survived into modern times. Her grandfather's voice again was whispering in her ear. Princess, I must tell you the truth about your family.
  1499. A chill raked her flesh.
  1500. Royal blood.
  1501. She could not imagine.
  1502. Princess Sophie.
  1503. Sir Leigh? The manservant's words crackled through the intercom on the wall, and Sophie jumped. If you could join me in the kitchen a moment?
  1504. Teabing scowled at the ill-timed intrusion. He went over to the intercom and pressed the button. R?my, as you know, I am busy with my guests. If we need anything else from the kitchen tonight, we will help ourselves. Thank you and good night.
  1505. A word with you before I retire, sir. If you would.
  1506. Teabing grunted and pressed the button. Make it quick, R?my.
  1507. It is a household matter, sir, hardly fare for guests to endure.
  1508. Teabing looked incredulous. And it cannot wait until morning?
  1509. No, sir. My question won't take a minute.
  1510. Teabing rolled his eyes and looked at Langdon and Sophie. Sometimes I wonder who is serving whom? He pressed the button again. I'll be right there, R?my. Can I bring you anything when I come?
  1511. Only freedom from oppression, sir.
  1512. R?my, you realize your steak au poivre is the only reason you still work for me.
  1513. So you tell me, sir. So you tell me.
  1514.  
  1515. CHAPTER 61
  1516.  
  1517. Princess Sophie.
  1518. Sophie felt hollow as she listened to the clicking of Teabing's crutches fade down the hallway. Numb, she turned and faced Langdon in the deserted ballroom. He was already shaking his head as if reading her mind.
  1519. No, Sophie, he whispered, his eyes reassuring. The same thought crossed my mind when I realized your grandfather was in the Priory, and you said he wanted to tell you a secret about your family. But it's impossible. Langdon paused. Saunière is not a Merovingian name.
  1520. Sophie wasn't sure whether to feel relieved or disappointed. Earlier, Langdon had asked an unusual passing question about Sophie's mother's maiden name. Chauvel. The question now made sense. And Chauvel? she asked, anxious.
  1521. Again he shook his head. I'm sorry. I know that would have answered some questions for you. Only two direct lines of Merovingians remain. Their family names are Plantard and Saint-Clair. Both families live in hiding, probably protected by the Priory.
  1522. Sophie repeated the names silently in her mind and then shook her head. There was no one in her family named Plantard or Saint-Clair. A weary undertow was pulling at her now. She realized she was no closer than she had been at the Louvre to understanding what truth her grandfather had wanted to reveal to her. Sophie wished her grandfather had never mentioned her family this afternoon. He had torn open old wounds that felt as painful now as ever. They are dead, Sophie. They are not coming back. She thought of her mother singing her to sleep at night, of her father giving her rides on his shoulders, and of her grandmother and younger brother smiling at her with their fervent green eyes. All that was stolen. And all she had left was her grandfather.
  1523. And now he is gone too. I am alone.
  1524. Sophie turned quietly back to The Last Supper and gazed at Mary Magdalene's long red hair and quiet eyes. There was something in the woman's expression that echoed the loss of a loved one. Sophie could feel it too.
  1525. Robert? she said softly.
  1526. He stepped closer.
  1527. I know Leigh said the Grail story is all around us, but tonight is the first time I've ever heard any of this.
  1528. Langdon looked as if he wanted to put a comforting hand on her shoulder, but he refrained. You've heard her story before, Sophie. Everyone has. We just don't realize it when we hear it.
  1529. I don't understand.
  1530. The Grail story is everywhere, but it is hidden. When the Church outlawed speaking of the shunned Mary Magdalene, her story and importance had to be passed on through more discreet channels... channels that supported metaphor and symbolism.
  1531. Of course. The arts.
  1532. Langdon motioned to The Last Supper. A perfect example. Some of today's most enduring art, literature, and music secretly tell the history of Mary Magdalene and Jesus.
  1533. Langdon quickly told her about works by Da Vinci, Botticelli, Poussin, Bernini, Mozart, and Victor Hugo that all whispered of the quest to restore the banished sacred feminine. Enduring legends like Sir Gawain and the Green Knight, King Arthur, and Sleeping Beauty were Grail allegories. Victor Hugo's Hunchback of Notre Dame and Mozart's Magic Flute were filled with Masonic symbolism and Grail secrets.
  1534. Once you open your eyes to the Holy Grail, Langdon said, you see her everywhere. Paintings. Music. Books. Even in cartoons, theme parks, and popular movies.
  1535. Langdon held up his Mickey Mouse watch and told her that Walt Disney had made it his quiet life's work to pass on the Grail story to future generations. Throughout his entire life, Disney had been hailed as the Modern-Day Leonardo da Vinci. Both men were generations ahead of their times, uniquely gifted artists, members of secret societies, and, most notably, avid pranksters. Like Leonardo, Walt Disney loved infusing hidden messages and symbolism in his art. For the trained symbologist, watching an early Disney movie was like being barraged by an avalanche of allusion and metaphor.
  1536. Most of Disney's hidden messages dealt with religion, pagan myth, and stories of the subjugated goddess. It was no mistake that Disney retold tales like Cinderella, Sleeping Beauty, and Snow White—all of which dealt with the incarceration of the sacred feminine. Nor did one need a background in symbolism to understand that Snow White—a princess who fell from grace after partaking of a poisoned apple—was a clear allusion to the downfall of Eve in the Garden of Eden. Or that Sleeping Beauty's Princess Aurora—code-named Rose and hidden deep in the forest to protect her from the clutches of the evil witch—was the Grail story for children.
  1537. Despite its corporate image, Disney still had a savvy, playful element among its employees, and their artists still amused themselves by inserting hidden symbolism in Disney products. Langdon would never forget one of his students bringing in a DVD of The Lion King and pausing the film to reveal a freeze-frame in which the word SEX was clearly visible, spelled out by floating dust particles over Simba's head. Although Langdon suspected this was more of a cartoonist's sophomoric prank than any kind of enlightened allusion to pagan human sexuality, he had learned not to underestimate Disney's grasp of symbolism. The Little Mermaid was a spellbinding tapestry of spiritual symbols so specifically goddess-related that they could not be coincidence.
  1538. When Langdon had first seen The Little Mermaid, he had actually gasped aloud when he noticed that the painting in Ariel's underwater home was none other than seventeenth-century artist Georges de la Tour's
  1539. —a famous homage to the banished Mary Magdalene—fitting decor considering the movie turned out to be a ninety-minute collage of blatant symbolic references to the lost sanctity of Isis, Eve, Pisces the fish goddess, and, repeatedly, Mary Magdalene. The Little Mermaid's name, Ariel, possessed powerful ties to the sacred feminine and, in the Book of Isaiah, was synonymous with the Holy City besieged. Of course, the Little Mermaid's flowing red hair was certainly no coincidence either.
  1540. The clicking of Teabing's crutches approached in the hallway, his pace unusually brisk. When their host entered the study, his expression was stern.
  1541. You'd better explain yourself, Robert, he said coldly. You have not been honest with me.
  1542.  
  1543. CHAPTER 62
  1544.  
  1545. I'm being framed, Leigh, Langdon said, trying to stay calm. You know me. I wouldn't kill anyone.
  1546. Teabing's tone did not soften. Robert, you're on television, for Christ's sake. Did you know you were wanted by the authorities?
  1547. Yes.
  1548. Then you abused my trust. I'm astonished you would put me at risk by coming here and asking me to ramble on about the Grail so you could hide out in my home.
  1549. I didn't kill anyone.
  1550. Jacques Saunière is dead, and the police say you did it. Teabing looked saddened. Such a contributor to the arts...
  1551. Sir? The manservant had appeared now, standing behind Teabing in the study doorway, his arms crossed. Shall I show them out?
  1552. Allow me. Teabing hobbled across the study, unlocked a set of wide glass doors, and swung them open onto a side lawn. Please find your car, and leave.
  1553. Sophie did not move. We have information about the clef de vo?te. The Priory keystone.
  1554. Teabing stared at her for several seconds and scoffed derisively. A desperate ploy. Robert knows how I've sought it.
  1555. She's telling the truth, Langdon said. That's why we came to you tonight. To talk to you about the keystone.
  1556. The manservant intervened now. Leave, or I shall call the authorities.
  1557. Leigh, Langdon whispered, we know where it is.
  1558. Teabing's balance seemed to falter a bit.
  1559. R?my now marched stiffly across the room. Leave at once! Or I will forcibly—
  1560. R?my! Teabing spun, snapping at his servant. Excuse us for a moment.
  1561. The servant's jaw dropped. Sir? I must protest. These people are—
  1562. I'll handle this. Teabing pointed to the hallway.
  1563. After a moment of stunned silence, R?my skulked out like a banished dog.
  1564. In the cool night breeze coming through the open doors, Teabing turned back to Sophie and Langdon, his expression still wary. This better be good. What do you know of the keystone?
  1565.  
  1566. In the thick brush outside Teabing's study, Silas clutched his pistol and gazed through the glass doors. Only moments ago, he had circled the house and seen Langdon and the woman talking in the large study. Before he could move in, a man on crutches entered, yelled at Langdon, threw open the doors, and demanded his guests leave. Then the woman mentioned the keystone, and everything changed. Shouts turned to whispers. Moods softened. And the glass doors were quickly closed.
  1567. Now, as he huddled in the shadows, Silas peered through the glass. The keystone is somewhere inside the house. Silas could feel it.
  1568. Staying in the shadows, he inched closer to the glass, eager to hear what was being said. He would give them five minutes. If they did not reveal where they had placed the keystone, Silas would have to enter and persuade them with force.
  1569.  
  1570. Inside the study, Langdon could sense their host's bewilderment.
  1571. Grand Master? Teabing choked, eyeing Sophie. Jacques Saunière?
  1572. Sophie nodded, seeing the shock in his eyes.
  1573. But you could not possibly know that!
  1574. Jacques Saunière was my grandfather.
  1575. Teabing staggered back on his crutches, shooting a glance at Langdon, who nodded. Teabing turned back to Sophie. Miss Neveu, I am speechless. If this is true, then I am truly sorry for your loss. I should admit, for my research, I have kept lists of men in Paris whom I thought might be good candidates for involvement in the Priory. Jacques Saunière was on that list along with many others. But Grand Master, you say? It's hard to fathom. Teabing was silent a moment and then shook his head. But it still makes no sense. Even if your grandfather were the Priory Grand Master and created the keystone himself, he would never tell you how to find it. The keystone reveals the pathway to the brotherhood's ultimate treasure. Granddaughter or not, you are not eligible to receive such knowledge.
  1576. Mr. Saunière was dying when he passed on the information, Langdon said. He had limited options.
  1577. He didn't need options, Teabing argued. There exist three s?n?chaux who also know the secret. That is the beauty of their system. One will rise to Grand Master and they will induct a new s?n?chal and share the secret of the keystone.
  1578. I guess you didn't see the entire news broadcast, Sophie said. In addition to my grandfather, three other prominent Parisians were murdered today. All in similar ways. All looked like they had been interrogated.
  1579. Teabing's jaw fell. And you think they were...
  1580. The s?n?chaux, Langdon said.
  1581. But how? A murderer could not possibly learn the identities of all four top members of the Priory of Sion! Look at me, I have been researching them for decades, and I can't even name one Priory member. It seems inconceivable that all three s?n?chaux and the Grand Master could be discovered and killed in one day.
  1582. I doubt the information was gathered in a single day, Sophie said. It sounds like a well-planned d?capiter. It's a technique we use to fight organized crime syndicates. If DCPJ wants to move on a certain group, they will silently listen and watch for months, identify all the main players, and then move in and take them all at the same moment. Decapitation. With no leadership, the group falls into chaos and divulges other information. It's possible someone patiently watched the Priory and then attacked, hoping the top people would reveal the location of the keystone.
  1583. Teabing looked unconvinced. But the brothers would never talk. They are sworn to secrecy. Even in the face of death.
  1584. Exactly, Langdon said. Meaning, if they never divulged the secret, and they were killed...
  1585. Teabing gasped. Then the location of the keystone would be lost forever!
  1586. And with it, Langdon said, the location of the Holy Grail.
  1587. Teabing's body seemed to sway with the weight of Langdon's words. Then, as if too tired to stand another moment, he flopped in a chair and stared out the window.
  1588. Sophie walked over, her voice soft. Considering my grandfather's predicament, it seems possible that in total desperation he tried to pass the secret on to someone outside the brotherhood. Someone he thought he could trust. Someone in his family.
  1589. Teabing was pale. But someone capable of such an attack... of discovering so much about the brotherhood... He paused, radiating a new fear. It could only be one force. This kind of infiltration could only have come from the Priory's oldest enemy.
  1590. Langdon glanced up. The Church.
  1591. Who else? Rome has been seeking the Grail for centuries.
  1592. Sophie was skeptical. You think the Church killed my grandfather?
  1593. Teabing replied, It would not be the first time in history the Church has killed to protect itself. The documents that accompany the Holy Grail are explosive, and the Church has wanted to destroy them for years.
  1594. Langdon was having trouble buying Teabing's premise that the Church would blatantly murder people to obtain these documents. Having met the new Pope and many of the cardinals, Langdon knew they were deeply spiritual men who would never condone assassination. Regardless of the stakes.
  1595. Sophie seemed to be having similar thoughts. Isn't it possible that these Priory members were murdered by someone outside the Church? Someone who didn't understand what the Grail really is? The Cup of Christ, after all, would be quite an enticing treasure. Certainly treasure hunters have killed for less.
  1596. In my experience, Teabing said, men go to far greater lengths to avoid what they fear than to obtain what they desire. I sense a desperation in this assault on the Priory.
  1597. Leigh, Langdon said, the argument is paradoxical. Why would members of the Catholic clergy murder Priory members in an effort to find and destroy documents they believe are false testimony anyway?
  1598. Teabing chuckled. The ivory towers of Harvard have made you soft, Robert. Yes, the clergy in Rome are blessed with potent faith, and because of this, their beliefs can weather any storm, including documents that contradict everything they hold dear. But what about the rest of the world? What about those who are not blessed with absolute certainty? What about those who look at the cruelty in the world and say, where is God today? Those who look at Church scandals and ask, who are these men who claim to speak the truth about Christ and yet lie to cover up the sexual abuse of children by their own priests? Teabing paused. What happens to those people, Robert, if persuasive scientific evidence comes out that the Church's version of the Christ story is inaccurate, and that the greatest story ever told is, in fact, the greatest story ever sold
  1599. Langdon did not respond.
  1600. I'll tell you what happens if the documents get out, Teabing said. The Vatican faces a crisis of faith unprecedented in its two-millennia history.
  1601. After a long silence, Sophie said, But if it is the Church who is responsible for this attack, why would they act now? After all these years? The Priory keeps the Sangreal documents hidden. They pose no immediate threat to the Church.
  1602. Teabing heaved an ominous sigh and glanced at Langdon. Robert, I assume you are familiar with the Priory's final charge?
  1603. Langdon felt his breath catch at the thought. I am.
  1604. Miss Neveu, Teabing said, the Church and the Priory have had a tacit understanding for years. That is, the Church does not attack the Priory, and the Priory keeps the Sangreal documents hidden. He paused. However, part of the Priory history has always included a plan to unveil the secret. With the arrival of a specific date in history, the brotherhood plans to break the silence and carry out its ultimate triumph by unveiling the Sangreal documents to the world and shouting the true story of Jesus Christ from the mountaintops.
  1605. Sophie stared at Teabing in silence. Finally, she too sat down. And you think that date is approaching? And the Church knows it?
  1606. A speculation, Teabing said, but it would certainly provide the Church motivation for an all-out attack to find the documents before it was too late.
  1607. Langdon had the uneasy feeling that Teabing was making good sense. Do you think the Church would actually be capable of uncovering hard evidence of the Priory's date?
  1608. Why not—if we're assuming the Church was able to uncover the identities of the Priory members, then certainly they could have learned of their plans. And even if they don't have the exact date, their superstitions may be getting the best of them.
  1609. Superstitions? Sophie asked.
  1610. In terms of prophecy, Teabing said, we are currently in an epoch of enormous change. The millennium has recently passed, and with it has ended the two-thousand-year-long astrological Age of Pisces—the fish, which is also the sign of Jesus. As any astrological symbologist will tell you, the Piscean ideal believes that man must be told what to do by higher powers because man is incapable of thinking for himself. Hence it has been a time of fervent religion. Now, however, we are entering the Age of Aquarius—the water bearer—whose ideals claim that man will learn the truth and be able to think for himself. The ideological shift is enormous, and it is occurring right now.
  1611. Langdon felt a shiver. Astrological prophecy never held much interest or credibility for him, but he knew there were those in the Church who followed it very closely. The Church calls this transitional period the End of Days.
  1612. Sophie looked skeptical. As in the end of the world? The Apocalypse?
  1613. No. Langdon replied. That's a common misconception. Many religions speak of the End of Days. It refers not to the end of the world, but rather the end of our current age—Pisces, which began at the time of Christ's birth, spanned two thousand years, and waned with the passing of the millennium. Now that we've passed into the Age of Aquarius, the End of Days has arrived.
  1614. Many Grail historians, Teabing added, believe that if the Priory is indeed planning to release this truth, this point in history would be a symbolically apt time. Most Priory academics, myself included, anticipated the brotherhood's release would coincide precisely with the millennium. Obviously, it did not. Admittedly, the Roman calendar does not mesh perfectly with astrological markers, so there is some gray area in the prediction. Whether the Church now has inside information that an exact date is looming, or whether they are just getting nervous on account of astrological prophecy, I don't know. Anyway, it's immaterial. Either scenario explains how the Church might be motivated to launch a preemptive attack against the Priory. Teabing frowned. And believe me, if the Church finds the Holy Grail, they will destroy it. The documents and the relics of the blessed Mary Magdalene as well. His eyes grew heavy. Then, my dear, with the Sangreal documents gone, all evidence will be lost. The Church will have won their age-old war to rewrite history. The past will be erased forever.
  1615. Slowly, Sophie pulled the cruciform key from her sweater pocket and held it out to Teabing.
  1616. Teabing took the key and studied it. My goodness. The Priory seal. Where did you get this?
  1617. My grandfather gave it to me tonight before he died.
  1618. Teabing ran his fingers across the cruciform. A key to a church?
  1619. She drew a deep breath. This key provides access to the keystone.
  1620. Teabing's head snapped up, his face wild with disbelief. Impossible! What church did I miss? I've searched every church in France!
  1621. It's not in a church, Sophie said. It's in a Swiss depository bank.
  1622. Teabing's look of excitement waned. The keystone is in a bank?
  1623. A vault, Langdon offered.
  1624. A bank vault? Teabing shook his head violently. That's impossible. The keystone is supposed to be hidden beneath the sign of the Rose.
  1625. It is, Langdon said. It was stored in a rosewood box inlaid with a five-petal Rose.
  1626. Teabing looked thunderstruck. You've seen the keystone?
  1627. Sophie nodded. We visited the bank.
  1628. Teabing came over to them, his eyes wild with fear. My friends, we must do something. The keystone is in danger! We have a duty to protect it. What if there are other keys? Perhaps stolen from the murdered s?n?chaux? If the Church can gain access to the bank as you have—
  1629. Then they will be too late, Sophie said. We removed the keystone.
  1630. What! You removed the keystone from its hiding place?
  1631. Don't worry, Langdon said. The keystone is well hidden.
  1632. Extremely well hidden, I hope!
  1633. Actually, Langdon said, unable to hide his grin, that depends on how often you dust under your couch.
  1634.  
  1635. The wind outside Ch?teau Villette had picked up, and Silas's robe danced in the breeze as he crouched near the window. Although he had been unable to hear much of the conversation, the word keystone had sifted through the glass on numerous occasions.
  1636. It is inside.
  1637. The Teacher's words were fresh in his mind. Enter Ch?teau Villette. Take the keystone. Hun no one.
  1638. Now, Langdon and the others had adjourned suddenly to another room, extinguishing the study lights as they went. Feeling like a panther stalking prey, Silas crept to the glass doors. Finding them unlocked, he slipped inside and closed the doors silently behind him. He could hear muffled voices from another room. Silas pulled the pistol from his pocket, turned off the safety, and inched down the hallway.
  1639.  
  1640. CHAPTER 63
  1641.  
  1642. Lieutenant Collet stood alone at the foot of Leigh Teabing's driveway and gazed up at the massive house. Isolated. Dark. Good ground cover. Collet watched his half-dozen agents spreading silently out along the length of the fence. They could be over it and have the house surrounded in a matter of minutes. Langdon could not have chosen a more ideal spot for Collet's men to make a surprise assault.
  1643. Collet was about to call Fache himself when at last his phone rang.
  1644. Fache sounded not nearly as pleased with the developments as Collet would have imagined. Why didn't someone tell me we had a lead on Langdon?
  1645. You were on a phone call and—
  1646. Where exactly are you, Lieutenant Collet?
  1647. Collet gave him the address. The estate belongs to a British national named Teabing. Langdon drove a fair distance to get here, and the vehicle is inside the security gate, with no signs of forced entry, so chances are good that Langdon knows the occupant.
  1648. I'm coming out, Fache said. Don't make a move. I'll handle this personally.
  1649. Collet's jaw dropped. But Captain, you're twenty minutes away! We should act immediately. I have him staked out. I'm with eight men total. Four of us have field rifles and the others have sidearms.
  1650. Wait for me.
  1651. Captain, what if Langdon has a hostage in there? What if he sees us and decides to leave on foot? We need to move now! My men are in position and ready to go.
  1652. Lieutenant Collet, you will wait for me to arrive before taking action. That is an order. Fache hung up.
  1653. Stunned, Lieutenant Collet switched off his phone. Why the hell is Fache asking me to wait? Collet knew the answer. Fache, though famous for his instinct, was notorious for his pride. Fache wants credit for the arrest. After putting the American's face all over the television, Fache wanted to be sure his own face got equal time. Collet's job was simply to hold down the fort until the boss showed up to save the day.
  1654. As he stood there, Collet flashed on a second possible explanation for this delay. Damage control. In law enforcement, hesitating to arrest a fugitive only occurred when uncertainty had arisen regarding the suspect's guilt. Is Fache having second thoughts that Langdon is the right man? The thought was frightening. Captain Fache had gone out on a limb tonight to arrest Robert Langdon—surveillance cach?e, Interpol, and now television. Not even the great Bezu Fache would survive the political fallout if he had mistakenly splashed a prominent American's face all over French television, claiming he was a murderer. If Fache now realized he'd made a mistake, then it made perfect sense that he would tell Collet not to make a move. The last thing Fache needed was for Collet to storm an innocent Brit's private estate and take Langdon at gunpoint.
  1655. Moreover, Collet realized, if Langdon were innocent, it explained one of this case's strangest paradoxes: Why had Sophie Neveu, the granddaughter of the victim, helped the alleged killer escape? Unless Sophie knew Langdon was falsely charged. Fache had posited all kinds of explanations tonight to explain Sophie's odd behavior, including that Sophie, as Saunière's sole heir, had persuaded her secret lover Robert Langdon to kill off Saunière for the inheritance money. Saunière, if he had suspected this, might have left the police the message P.S. Find Robert Langdon. Collet was fairly certain something else was going on here. Sophie Neveu seemed far too solid of character to be mixed up in something that sordid.
  1656. Lieutenant? One of the field agents came running over. We found a car.
  1657. Collet followed the agent about fifty yards past the driveway. The agent pointed to a wide shoulder on the opposite side of the road. There, parked in the brush, almost out of sight, was a black Audi. It had rental plates. Collet felt the hood. Still warm. Hot even.
  1658. That must be how Langdon got here, Collet said. Call the rental company. Find out if it's stolen.
  1659. Yes, sir.
  1660. Another agent waved Collet back over in the direction of the fence. Lieutenant, have a look at this. He handed Collet a pair of night vision binoculars. The grove of trees near the top of the driveway.
  1661. Collet aimed the binoculars up the hill and adjusted the image intensifier dials. Slowly, the greenish shapes came into focus. He located the curve of the driveway and slowly followed it up, reaching the grove of trees. All he could do was stare. There, shrouded in the greenery, was an armored truck. A truck identical to the one Collet had permitted to leave the Depository Bank of Zurich earlier tonight. He prayed this was some kind of bizarre coincidence, but he knew it could not be.
  1662. It seems obvious, the agent said, that this truck is how Langdon and Neveu got away from the bank.
  1663. Collet was speechless. He thought of the armored truck driver he had stopped at the roadblock. The Rolex. His impatience to leave. I never checked the cargo hold.
  1664. Incredulous, Collet realized that someone in the bank had actually lied to DCPJ about Langdon and Sophie's whereabouts and then helped them escape. But who? And why? Collet wondered if maybe this were the reason Fache had told him not to take action yet. Maybe Fache realized there were more people involved tonight than just Langdon and Sophie. And if Langdon and Neveu arrived in the armored truck, then who drove the Audi?
  1665.  
  1666. Hundreds of miles to the south, a chartered Beechcraft Baron 58 raced northward over the Tyrrhenian Sea. Despite calm skies, Bishop Aringarosa clutched an airsickness bag, certain he could be ill at any moment. His conversation with Paris had not at all been what he had imagined.
  1667. Alone in the small cabin, Aringarosa twisted the gold ring on his finger and tried to ease his overwhelming sense of fear and desperation. Everything in Paris has gone terribly wrong. Closing his eyes, Aringarosa said a prayer that Bezu Fache would have the means to fix it.
  1668.  
  1669. CHAPTER 64
  1670.  
  1671. Teabing sat on the divan, cradling the wooden box on his lap and admiring the lid's intricate inlaid Rose. Tonight has become the strangest and most magical night of my life.
  1672. Lift the lid, Sophie whispered, standing over him, beside Langdon.
  1673. Teabing smiled. Do not rush me. Having spent over a decade searching for this keystone, he wanted to savor every millisecond of this moment. He ran a palm across the wooden lid, feeling the texture of the inlaid flower.
  1674. The Rose, he whispered. The Rose is Magdalene is the Holy Grail. The Rose is the compass that guides the way. Teabing felt foolish. For years he had traveled to cathedrals and churches all over France, paying for special access, examining hundreds of archways beneath rose windows, searching for an encrypted keystone. La clef de vo?te—a stone key beneath the sign of the Rose.
  1675. Teabing slowly unlatched the lid and raised it.
  1676. As his eyes finally gazed upon the contents, he knew in an instant it could only be the keystone. He was staring at a stone cylinder, crafted of interconnecting lettered dials. The device seemed surprisingly familiar to him.
  1677. Designed from Da Vinci's diaries, Sophie said. My grandfather made them as a hobby.
  1678. Of course, Teabing realized. He had seen the sketches and blueprints. The key to finding the Holy Grail lies inside this stone. Teabing lifted the heavy cryptex from the box, holding it gently. Although he had no idea how to open the cylinder, he sensed his own destiny lay inside. In moments of failure, Teabing had questioned whether his life's quest would ever be rewarded. Now those doubts were gone forever. He could hear the ancient words... the foundation of the Grail legend:
  1679. Vous ne trouvez pas le Saint-Graal, c'est le Saint-Graal qui vous trouve.
  1680. You do not find the Grail, the Grail finds you.
  1681. And tonight, incredibly, the key to finding the Holy Grail had walked right through his front door.
  1682.  
  1683. While Sophie and Teabing sat with the cryptex and talked about the vinegar, the dials, and what the password might be, Langdon carried the rosewood box across the room to a well-lit table to get a better look at it. Something Teabing had just said was now running through Langdon's mind.
  1684. The key to the Grail is hidden beneath the sign of the Rose.
  1685. Langdon held the wooden box up to the light and examined the inlaid symbol of the Rose. Although his familiarity with art did not include woodworking or inlaid furniture, he had just recalled the famous tiled ceiling of the Spanish monastery outside of Madrid, where, three centuries after its construction, the ceiling tiles began to fall out, revealing sacred texts scrawled by monks on the plaster beneath.
  1686. Langdon looked again at the Rose.
  1687. Beneath the Rose.
  1688. Sub Rosa.
  1689. Secret.
  1690. A bump in the hallway behind him made Langdon turn. He saw nothing but shadows. Teabing's manservant most likely had passed through. Langdon turned back to the box. He ran his finger over the smooth edge of the inlay, wondering if he could pry the Rose out, but the craftsmanship was perfect. He doubted even a razor blade could fit in between the inlaid Rose and the carefully carved depression into which it was seated.
  1691. Opening the box, he examined the inside of the lid. It was smooth. As he shifted its position, though, the light caught what appeared to be a small hole on the underside of the lid, positioned in the exact center. Langdon closed the lid and examined the inlaid symbol from the top. No hole.
  1692. It doesn't pass through.
  1693. Setting the box on the table, he looked around the room and spied a stack of papers with a paper clip on it. Borrowing the clip, he returned to the box, opened it, and studied the hole again. Carefully, he unbent the paper clip and inserted one end into the hole. He gave a gentle push. It took almost no effort. He heard something clatter quietly onto the table. Langdon closed the lid to look. It was a small piece of wood, like a puzzle piece. The wooden Rose had popped out of the lid and fallen onto the desk.
  1694. Speechless, Langdon stared at the bare spot on the lid where the Rose had been. There, engraved in the wood, written in an immaculate hand, were four lines of text in a language he had never seen.
  1695. The characters look vaguely Semitic, Langdon thought to himself, and yet I don't recognize the language!
  1696. A sudden movement behind him caught his attention. Out of nowhere, a crushing blow to the head knocked Langdon to his knees.
  1697. As he fell, he thought for a moment he saw a pale ghost hovering over him, clutching a gun. Then everything went black.
  1698.  
  1699. CHAPTER 65
  1700.  
  1701. Sophie Neveu, despite working in law enforcement, had never found herself at gunpoint until tonight. Almost inconceivably, the gun into which she was now staring was clutched in the pale hand of an enormous albino with long white hair. He looked at her with red eyes that radiated a frightening, disembodied quality. Dressed in a wool robe with a rope tie, he resembled a medieval cleric. Sophie could not imagine who he was, and yet she was feeling a sudden newfound respect for Teabing's suspicions that the Church was behind this.
  1702. You know what I have come for, the monk said, his voice hollow.
  1703. Sophie and Teabing were seated on the divan, arms raised as their attacker had commanded. Langdon lay groaning on the floor. The monk's eyes fell immediately to the keystone on Teabing's lap.
  1704. Teabing's tone was defiant. You will not be able to open it.
  1705. My Teacher is very wise, the monk replied, inching closer, the gun shifting between Teabing and Sophie.
  1706. Sophie wondered where Teabing's manservant was. Didn't he hear Robert fall?
  1707. Who is your teacher? Teabing asked. Perhaps we can make a financial arrangement.
  1708. The Grail is priceless. He moved closer.
  1709. You're bleeding, Teabing noted calmly, nodding to the monk's right ankle where a trickle of blood had run down his leg. And you're limping.
  1710. As do you, the monk replied, motioning to the metal crutches propped beside Teabing. Now, hand me the keystone.
  1711. You know of the keystone? Teabing said, sounding surprised.
  1712. Never mind what I know. Stand up slowly, and give it to me.
  1713. Standing is difficult for me.
  1714. Precisely. I would prefer nobody attempt any quick moves.
  1715. Teabing slipped his right hand through one of his crutches and grasped the keystone in his left. Lurching to his feet, he stood erect, palming the heavy cylinder in his left hand, and leaning unsteadily on his crutch with his right.
  1716. The monk closed to within a few feet, keeping the gun aimed directly at Teabing's head. Sophie watched, feeling helpless as the monk reached out to take the cylinder.
  1717. You will not succeed, Teabing said. Only the worthy can unlock this stone.
  1718.  
  1719. God alone judges the worthy, Silas thought.
  1720. It's quite heavy, the man on crutches said, his arm wavering now. If you don't take it soon, I'm afraid I shall drop it! He swayed perilously.
  1721. Silas stepped quickly forward to take the stone, and as he did, the man on crutches lost his balance. The crutch slid out from under him, and he began to topple sideways to his right. No! Silas lunged to save the stone, lowering his weapon in the process. But the keystone was moving away from him now. As the man fell to his right, his left hand swung backward, and the cylinder tumbled from his palm onto the couch. At the same instant, the metal crutch that had been sliding out from under the man seemed to accelerate, cutting a wide arc through the air toward Silas's leg.
  1722. Splinters of pain tore up Silas's body as the crutch made perfect contact with his cilice, crushing the barbs into his already raw flesh. Buckling, Silas crumpled to his knees, causing the belt to cut deeper still. The pistol discharged with a deafening roar, the bullet burying itself harmlessly in the floorboards as Silas fell. Before he could raise the gun and fire again, the woman's foot caught him square beneath the jaw.
  1723.  
  1724. At the bottom of the driveway, Collet heard the gunshot. The muffled pop sent panic through his veins. With Fache on the way, Collet had already relinquished any hopes of claiming personal credit for finding Langdon tonight. But Collet would be damned if Fache's ego landed him in front of a Ministerial Review Board for negligent police procedure.
  1725. A weapon was discharged inside a private home! And you waited at the bottom of the driveway?
  1726. Collet knew the opportunity for a stealth approach had long since passed. He also knew if he stood idly by for another second, his entire career would be history by morning. Eyeing the estate's iron gate, he made his decision.
  1727. Tie on, and pull it down.
  1728.  
  1729. In the distant recesses of his groggy mind, Robert Langdon had heard the gunshot. He'd also heard a scream of pain. His own? A jackhammer was boring a hole into the back of his cranium. Somewhere nearby, people were talking.
  1730. Where the devil were you? Teabing was yelling.
  1731. The manservant hurried in. What happened? Oh my God! Who is that? I'll call the police!
  1732. Bloody hell! Don't call the police. Make yourself useful and get us something with which to restrain this monster.
  1733. And some ice! Sophie called after him.
  1734. Langdon drifted out again. More voices. Movement. Now he was seated on the divan. Sophie was holding an ice pack to his head. His skull ached. As Langdon's vision finally began to clear, he found himself staring at a body on the floor. Am I hallucinating? The massive body of an albino monk lay bound and gagged with duct tape. His chin was split open, and the robe over his right thigh was soaked with blood. He too appeared to be just now coming to.
  1735. Langdon turned to Sophie. Who is that? What... happened?
  1736. Teabing hobbled over. You were rescued by a knight brandishing an Excalibur made by Acme Orthopedic.
  1737. Huh? Langdon tried to sit up.
  1738. Sophie's touch was shaken but tender. Just give yourself a minute, Robert.
  1739. I fear, Teabing said, that I've just demonstrated for your lady friend the unfortunate benefit of my condition. It seems everyone underestimates you.
  1740. From his seat on the divan, Langdon gazed down at the monk and tried to imagine what had happened.
  1741. He was wearing a cilice, Teabing explained.
  1742. A what?
  1743. Teabing pointed to a bloody strip of barbed leather that lay on the floor. A Discipline belt. He wore it on his thigh. I took careful aim.
  1744. Langdon rubbed his head. He knew of Discipline belts. But how... did you know?
  1745. Teabing grinned. Christianity is my field of study, Robert, and there are certain sects who wear their hearts on their sleeves. He pointed his crutch at the blood soaking through the monk's cloak. As it were.
  1746. Opus Dei, Langdon whispered, recalling recent media coverage of several prominent Boston businessmen who were members of Opus Dei. Apprehensive coworkers had falsely and publicly accused the men of wearing Discipline belts beneath their three-piece suits. In fact, the three men did no such thing. Like many members of Opus Dei, these businessmen were at the supernumerary stage and practiced no corporal mortification at all. They were devout Catholics, caring fathers to their children, and deeply dedicated members of the community. Not surprisingly, the media spotlighted their spiritual commitment only briefly before moving on to the shock value of the sect's more stringent numerary members... members like the monk now lying on the floor before Langdon.
  1747. Teabing was looking closely at the bloody belt. But why would Opus Dei be trying to find the Holy Grail?
  1748. Langdon was too groggy to consider it.
  1749. Robert, Sophie said, walking to the wooden box. What's this? She was holding the small Rose inlay he had removed from the lid.
  1750. It covered an engraving on the box. I think the text might tell us how to open the keystone.
  1751. Before Sophie and Teabing could respond, a sea of blue police lights and sirens erupted at the bottom of the hill and began snaking up the half-mile driveway.
  1752. Teabing frowned. My friends, it seems we have a decision to make. And we'd better make it fast.
  1753.  
  1754. CHAPTER 66
  1755.  
  1756. Collet and his agents burst through the front door of Sir Leigh Teabing's estate with their guns drawn. Fanning out, they began searching all the rooms on the first level. They found a bullet hole in the drawing room floor, signs of a struggle, a small amount of blood, a strange, barbed leather belt, and a partially used roll of duct tape. The entire level seemed deserted.
  1757. Just as Collet was about to divide his men to search the basement and grounds behind the house, he heard voices on the level above them.
  1758. They're upstairs!
  1759. Rushing up the wide staircase, Collet and his men moved room by room through the huge home, securing darkened bedrooms and hallways as they closed in on the sounds of voices. The sound seemed to be coming from the last bedroom on an exceptionally long hallway. The agents inched down the corridor, sealing off alternate exits.
  1760. As they neared the final bedroom, Collet could see the door was wide open. The voices had stopped suddenly, and had been replaced by an odd rumbling, like an engine.
  1761. Sidearm raised, Collet gave the signal. Reaching silently around the door frame, he found the light switch and flicked it on. Spinning into the room with men pouring in after him, Collet shouted and aimed his weapon at... nothing.
  1762. An empty guest bedroom. Pristine.
  1763. The rumbling sounds of an automobile engine poured from a black electronic panel on the wall beside the bed. Collet had seen these elsewhere in the house. Some kind of intercom system. He raced over. The panel had about a dozen labeled buttons:
  1764. STUDY... KITCHEN... LAUNDRY... CELLAR...
  1765.  
  1766. So where the hell do I hear a car?
  1767. MASTER BEDROOM... SUN ROOM... BARN... LIBRARY...
  1768.  
  1769. Barn! Collet was downstairs in seconds, running toward the back door, grabbing one of his agents on the way. The men crossed the rear lawn and arrived breathless at the front of a weathered gray barn. Even before they entered, Collet could hear the fading sounds of a car engine. He drew his weapon, rushed in, and flicked on the lights.
  1770. The right side of the barn was a rudimentary workshop—lawn-mowers, automotive tools, gardening supplies. A familiar intercom panel hung on the wall nearby. One of its buttons was flipped down, transmitting.
  1771. GUEST BEDROOM II.
  1772.  
  1773. Collet wheeled, anger brimming. They lured us upstairs with the intercom! Searching the other side of the barn, he found a long line of horse stalls. No horses. Apparently the owner preferred a different kind of horsepower; the stalls had been converted into an impressive automotive parking facility. The collection was astonishing—a black Ferrari, a pristine Rolls-Royce, an antique Astin Martin sports coupe, a vintage Porsche 356.
  1774. The last stall was empty.
  1775. Collet ran over and saw oil stains on the stall floor. They can't get off the compound. The driveway and gate were barricaded with two patrol cars to prevent this very situation.
  1776. Sir? The agent pointed down the length of the stalls.
  1777. The barn's rear slider was wide open, giving way to a dark, muddy slope of rugged fields that stretched out into the night behind the barn. Collet ran to the door, trying to see out into the darkness. All he could make out was the faint shadow of a forest in the distance. No headlights. This wooded valley was probably crisscrossed by dozens of unmapped fire roads and hunting trails, but Collet was confident his quarry would never make the woods. Get some men spread out down there. They're probably already stuck somewhere nearby. These fancy sports cars can't handle terrain.
  1778. Um, sir? The agent pointed to a nearby pegboard on which hung several sets of keys. The labels above the keys bore familiar names.
  1779. DAIMLER... ROLLS-ROYCE... ASTIN MARTIN... PORSCHE...
  1780.  
  1781. The last peg was empty.
  1782. When Collet read the label above the empty peg, he knew he was in trouble.
  1783.  
  1784. CHAPTER 67
  1785.  
  1786. The Range Rover was Java Black Pearl, four-wheel drive, standard transmission, with high-strength polypropylene lamps, rear light cluster fittings, and the steering wheel on the right.
  1787. Langdon was pleased he was not driving.
  1788. Teabing's manservant R?my, on orders from his master, was doing an impressive job of maneuvering the vehicle across the moonlit fields behind Ch?teau Villette. With no headlights, he had crossed an open knoll and was now descending a long slope, moving farther away from the estate. He seemed to be heading toward a jagged silhouette of wooded land in the distance.
  1789. Langdon, cradling the keystone, turned in the passenger seat and eyed Teabing and Sophie in the back seat.
  1790. How's your head, Robert? Sophie asked, sounding concerned.
  1791. Langdon forced a pained smile. Better, thanks. It was killing him.
  1792. Beside her, Teabing glanced over his shoulder at the bound and gagged monk lying in the cramped luggage area behind the back seat. Teabing had the monk's gun on his lap and looked like an old photo of a British safari chap posing over his kill.
  1793. So glad you popped in this evening, Robert, Teabing said, grinning as if he were having fun for the first time in years.
  1794. Sorry to get you involved in this, Leigh.
  1795. Oh, please, I've waited my entire life to be involved. Teabing looked past Langdon out the windshield at the shadow of a long hedgerow. He tapped R?my on the shoulder from behind. Remember, no brake lights. Use the emergency brake if you need it. I want to get into the woods a bit. No reason to risk them seeing us from the house.
  1796. R?my coasted to a crawl and guided the Range Rover through an opening in the hedge. As the vehicle lurched onto an overgrown pathway, almost immediately the trees overhead blotted out the moonlight.
  1797. I can't see a thing, Langdon thought, straining to distinguish any shapes at all in front of them. It was pitch black. Branches rubbed against the left side of the vehicle, and R?my corrected in the other direction. Keeping the wheel more or less straight now, he inched ahead about thirty yards.
  1798. You're doing beautifully, R?my, Teabing said. That should be far enough. Robert, if you could press that little blue button just below the vent there. See it?
  1799. Langdon found the button and pressed it.
  1800. A muted yellow glow fanned out across the path in front of them, revealing thick underbrush on either side of the pathway. Fog lights, Langdon realized. They gave off just enough light to keep them on the path, and yet they were deep enough into the woods now that the lights would not give them away.
  1801. Well, R?my, Teabing chimed happily. The lights are on. Our lives are in your hands.
  1802. Where are we going? Sophie asked.
  1803. This trail continues about three kilometers into the forest, Teabing said. Cutting across the estate and then arching north. Provided we don't hit any standing water or fallen trees, we shall emerge unscathed on the shoulder of highway five.
  1804. Unscathed. Langdon's head begged to differ. He turned his eyes down to his own lap, where the keystone was safely stowed in its wooden box. The inlaid Rose on the lid was back in place, and although his head felt muddled, Langdon was eager to remove the inlay again and examine the engraving beneath more closely. He unlatched the lid and began to raise it when Teabing laid a hand on his shoulder from behind.
  1805. Patience, Robert, Teabing said. It's bumpy and dark. God save us if we break anything. If you didn't recognize the language in the light, you won't do any better in the dark. Let's focus on getting away in one piece, shall we? There will be time for that very soon.
  1806. Langdon knew Teabing was right. With a nod, he relatched the box.
  1807. The monk in back was moaning now, struggling against his trusses. Suddenly, he began kicking wildly.
  1808. Teabing spun around and aimed the pistol over the seat. I can't imagine your complaint, sir. You trespassed in my home and planted a nasty welt on the skull of a dear friend. I would be well within my rights to shoot you right now and leave you to rot in the woods.
  1809. The monk fell silent.
  1810. Are you sure we should have brought him? Langdon asked.
  1811. Bloody well positive! Teabing exclaimed. You're wanted for murder, Robert. This scoundrel is your ticket to freedom. The police apparently want you badly enough to have tailed you to my home.
  1812. My fault, Sophie said. The armored car probably had a transmitter.
  1813. Not the point, Teabing said. I'm not surprised the police found you, but I am surprised that this Opus Dei character found you. From all you've told me, I can't imagine how this man could have tailed you to my home unless he had a contact either within the Judicial Police or within the Zurich Depository.
  1814. Langdon considered it. Bezu Fache certainly seemed intent on finding a scapegoat for tonight's murders. And Vernet had turned on them rather suddenly, although considering Langdon was being charged with four murders, the banker's change of heart seemed understandable.
  1815. This monk is not working alone, Robert, Teabing said, and until you learn who is behind all this, you both are in danger. The good news, my friend, is that you are now in the position of power. This monster behind me holds that information, and whoever is pulling his strings has got to be quite nervous right now.
  1816. R?my was picking up speed, getting comfortable with the trail. They splashed through some water, climbed a small rise, and began descending again.
  1817. Robert, could you be so kind as to hand me that phone? Teabing pointed to the car phone on the dash. Langdon handed it back, and Teabing dialed a number. He waited for a very long time before someone answered. Richard? Did I wake you? Of course, I did. Silly question. I'm sorry. I have a small problem. I'm feeling a bit off. R?my and I need to pop up to the Isles for my treatments. Well, right away, actually. Sorry for the short notice. Can you have Elizabeth ready in about twenty minutes? I know, do the best you can. See you shortly. He hung up.
  1818. Elizabeth? Langdon said.
  1819. My plane. She cost me a Queen's ransom.
  1820. Langdon turned full around and looked at him.
  1821. What? Teabing demanded. You two can't expect to stay in France with the entire Judicial Police after you. London will be much safer.
  1822. Sophie had turned to Teabing as well. You think we should leave the country?
  1823. My friends, I am far more influential in the civilized world than here in France. Furthermore, the Grail is believed to be in Great Britain. If we unlock the keystone, I am certain we will discover a map that indicates we have moved in the proper direction.
  1824. You're running a big risk, Sophie said, by helping us. You won't make any friends with the French police.
  1825. Teabing gave a wave of disgust. I am finished with France. I moved here to find the keystone. That work is now done. I shan't care if I ever again see Ch?teau Villette.
  1826. Sophie sounded uncertain. How will we get through airport security?
  1827. Teabing chuckled. I fly from Le Bourget—an executive airfield not far from here. French doctors make me nervous, so every fortnight, I fly north to take my treatments in England. I pay for certain special privileges at both ends. Once we're airborne, you can make a decision as to whether or not you'd like someone from the U.S. Embassy to meet us.
  1828. Langdon suddenly didn't want anything to do with the embassy. All he could think of was the keystone, the inscription, and whether it would all lead to the Grail. He wondered if Teabing was right about Britain. Admittedly most modern legends placed the Grail somewhere in the United Kingdom. Even King Arthur's mythical, Grail-rich Isle of Avalon was now believed to be none other than Glastonbury, England. Wherever the Grail lay, Langdon never imagined he would actually be looking for it. The Sangreal documents. The true history of Jesus Christ. The tomb of Mary Magdalene. He suddenly felt as if he were living in some kind of limbo tonight... a bubble where the real world could not reach him.
  1829. Sir? R?my said. Are you truly thinking of returning to England for good?
  1830. R?my, you needn't worry, Teabing assured. Just because I am returning to the Queen's realm does not mean I intend to subject my palate to bangers and mash for the rest of my days. I expect you will join me there permanently. I'm planning to buy a splendid villa in Devonshire, and we'll have all your things shipped up immediately. An adventure, R?my. I say, an adventure!
  1831. Langdon had to smile. As Teabing railed on about his plans for a triumphant return to Britain, Langdon felt himself caught up in the man's infectious enthusiasm.
  1832. Gazing absently out the window, Langdon watched the woods passing by, ghostly pale in the yellow blush of the fog lights. The side mirror was tipped inward, brushed askew by branches, and Langdon saw the reflection of Sophie sitting quietly in the back seat. He watched her for a long while and felt an unexpected upwelling of contentment. Despite his troubles tonight, Langdon was thankful to have landed in such good company.
  1833. After several minutes, as if suddenly sensing his eyes on her, Sophie leaned forward and put her hands on his shoulders, giving him a quick rub. You okay?
  1834. Yeah, Langdon said. Somehow.
  1835. Sophie sat back in her seat, and Langdon saw a quiet smile cross her lips. He realized that he too was now grinning.
  1836.  
  1837. Wedged in the back of the Range Rover, Silas could barely breathe. His arms were wrenched backward and heavily lashed to his ankles with kitchen twine and duct tape. Every bump in the road sent pain shooting through his twisted shoulders. At least his captors had removed the cilice. Unable to inhale through the strip of tape over his mouth, he could only breathe through his nostrils, which were slowly clogging up due to the dusty rear cargo area into which he had been crammed. He began coughing.
  1838. I think he's choking, the French driver said, sounding concerned.
  1839. The British man who had struck Silas with his crutch now turned and peered over the seat, frowning coldly at Silas. Fortunately for you, we British judge man's civility not by his compassion for his friends, but by his compassion for his enemies. The Brit reached down and grabbed the duct tape on Silas's mouth. In one fast motion, he tore it off.
  1840. Silas felt as if his lips had just caught fire, but the air pouring into his lungs was sent from God.
  1841. Whom do you work for? the British man demanded.
  1842. I do the work of God, Silas spat back through the pain in his jaw where the woman had kicked him.
  1843. You belong to Opus Dei, the man said. It was not a question.
  1844. You know nothing of who I am.
  1845. Why does Opus Dei want the keystone?
  1846. Silas had no intention of answering. The keystone was the link to the Holy Grail, and the Holy Grail was the key to protecting the faith.
  1847. I do the work of God. The Way is in peril.
  1848. Now, in the Range Rover, struggling against his bonds, Silas feared he had failed the Teacher and the bishop forever. He had no way even to contact them and tell them the terrible turn of events. My captors have the keystone! They will reach the Grail before we do! In the stifling darkness, Silas prayed. He let the pain of his body fuel his supplications.
  1849. A miracle, Lord. I need a miracle. Silas had no way of knowing that hours from now, he would get one.
  1850.  
  1851. Robert? Sophie was still watching him. A funny look just crossed your face.
  1852. Langdon glanced back at her, realizing his jaw was firmly set and his heart was racing. An incredible notion had just occurred to him. Could it really be that simple an explanation? I need to use your cell phone, Sophie.
  1853. Now?
  1854. I think I just figured something out.
  1855. What?
  1856. I'll tell you in a minute. I need your phone.
  1857. Sophie looked wary. I doubt Fache is tracing, but keep it under a minute just in case. She gave him her phone.
  1858. How do I dial the States?
  1859. You need to reverse the charges. My service doesn't cover transatlantic.
  1860. Langdon dialed zero, knowing that the next sixty seconds might answer a question that had been puzzling him all night.
  1861.  
  1862. CHAPTER 68
  1863.  
  1864. New York editor Jonas Faukman had just climbed into bed for the night when the telephone rang. A little late for callers, he grumbled, picking up the receiver.
  1865. An operator's voice asked him, Will you accept charges for a collect call from Robert Langdon?
  1866. Puzzled, Jonas turned on the light. Uh... sure, okay.
  1867. The line clicked. Jonas?
  1868. Robert? You wake me up and you charge me for it?
  1869. Jonas, forgive me, Langdon said. I'll keep this very short. I really need to know. The manuscript I gave you. Have you—
  1870. Robert, I'm sorry, I know I said I'd send the edits out to you this week, but I'm swamped. Next Monday. I promise.
  1871. I'm not worried about the edits. I need to know if you sent any copies out for blurbs without telling me?
  1872. Faukman hesitated. Langdon's newest manuscript—an exploration of the history of goddess worship—included several sections about Mary Magdalene that were going to raise some eyebrows. Although the material was well documented and had been covered by others, Faukman had no intention of printing Advance Reading Copies of Langdon's book without at least a few endorsements from serious historians and art luminaries. Jonas had chosen ten big names in the art world and sent them all sections of the manuscript along with a polite letter asking if they would be willing to write a short endorsement for the jacket. In Faukman's experience, most people jumped at the opportunity to see their name in print.
  1873. Jonas? Langdon pressed. You sent out my manuscript, didn't you?
  1874. Faukman frowned, sensing Langdon was not happy about it. The manuscript was clean, Robert, and I wanted to surprise you with some terrific blurbs.
  1875. A pause. Did you send one to the curator of the Paris Louvre?
  1876. What do you think? Your manuscript referenced his Louvre collection several times, his books are in your bibliography, and the guy has some serious clout for foreign sales. Saunière was a no-brainer.
  1877. The silence on the other end lasted a long time. When did you send it?
  1878. About a month ago. I also mentioned you would be in Paris soon and suggested you two chat. Did he ever call you to meet? Faukman paused, rubbing his eyes. Hold on, aren't you supposed to be in Paris this week?
  1879. I am in Paris.
  1880. Faukman sat upright. You called me collect from Paris?
  1881. Take it out of my royalties, Jonas. Did you ever hear back from Saunière? Did he like the manuscript?
  1882. I don't know. I haven't yet heard from him.
  1883. Well, don't hold your breath. I've got to run, but this explains a lot Thanks.
  1884. Robert—
  1885. But Langdon was gone.
  1886. Faukman hung up the phone, shaking his head in disbelief Authors, he thought. Even the sane ones are nuts.
  1887.  
  1888. Inside the Range Rover, Leigh Teabing let out a guffaw. Robert, you're saying you wrote a manuscript that delves into a secret society, and your editor sent a copy to that secret society?
  1889. Langdon slumped. Evidently.
  1890. A cruel coincidence, my friend.
  1891. Coincidence has nothing to do with it, Langdon knew. Asking Jacques Saunière to endorse a manuscript on goddess worship was as obvious as asking Tiger Woods to endorse a book on golf. Moreover, it was virtually guaranteed that any book on goddess worship would have to mention the Priory of Sion.
  1892. Here's the million-dollar question, Teabing said, still chuckling. Was your position on the Priory favorable or unfavorable?
  1893. Langdon could hear Teabing's true meaning loud and clear. Many historians questioned why the Priory was still keeping the Sangreal documents hidden. Some felt the information should have been shared with the world long ago. I took no position on the Priory's actions.
  1894. You mean lack thereof.
  1895. Langdon shrugged. Teabing was apparently on the side of making the documents public. I simply provided history on the brotherhood and described them as a modern goddess worship society, keepers of the Grail, and guardians of ancient documents.
  1896. Sophie looked at him. Did you mention the keystone?
  1897. Langdon winced. He had. Numerous times. I talked about the supposed keystone as an example of the lengths to which the Priory would go to protect the Sangreal documents.
  1898. Sophie looked amazed. I guess that explains P.S. Find Robert Langdon.
  1899. Langdon sensed it was actually something else in the manuscript that had piqued Saunière's interest, but that topic was something he would discuss with Sophie when they were alone.
  1900. So, Sophie said, you lied to Captain Fache.
  1901. What? Langdon demanded.
  1902. You told him you had never corresponded with my grandfather.
  1903. I didn't! My editor sent him a manuscript.
  1904. Think about it, Robert. If Captain Fache didn't find the envelope in which your editor sent the manuscript, he would have to conclude that you sent it. She paused. Or worse, that you hand-delivered it and lied about it.
  1905.  
  1906. When the Range Rover arrived at Le Bourget Airfield, R?my drove to a small hangar at the far end of the airstrip. As they approached, a tousled man in wrinkled khakis hurried from the hangar, waved, and slid open the enormous corrugated metal door to reveal a sleek white jet within.
  1907. Langdon stared at the glistening fuselage. That's Elizabeth?
  1908. Teabing grinned. Beats the bloody Chunnel.
  1909. The man in khakis hurried toward them, squinting into the headlights. Almost ready, sir, he called in a British accent. My apologies for the delay, but you took me by surprise and— He stopped short as the group unloaded. He looked at Sophie and Langdon, and then Teabing.
  1910. Teabing said, My associates and I have urgent business in London. We've no time to waste. Please prepare to depart immediately. As he spoke, Teabing took the pistol out of the vehicle and handed it to Langdon.
  1911. The pilot's eyes bulged at the sight of the weapon. He walked over to Teabing and whispered, Sir, my humble apologies, but my diplomatic flight allowance provides only for you and your manservant. I cannot take your guests.
  1912. Richard, Teabing said, smiling warmly, two thousand pounds sterling and that loaded gun say you can take my guests. He motioned to the Range Rover. And the unfortunate fellow in the back.
  1913.  
  1914. CHAPTER 69
  1915.  
  1916. The Hawker 731's twin Garrett TFE-731 engines thundered, powering the plane skyward with gut-wrenching force. Outside the window, Le Bourget Airfield dropped away with startling speed.
  1917. I'm fleeing the country, Sophie thought, her body forced back into the leather seat. Until this moment, she had believed her game of cat and mouse with Fache would be somehow justifiable to the Ministry of Defense. I was attempting to protect an innocent man. I was trying to fulfill my grandfather's dying wishes. That window of opportunity, Sophie knew, had just closed. She was leaving the country, without documentation, accompanying a wanted man, and transporting a bound hostage. If a line of reason had ever existed, she had just crossed it. At almost the speed of sound.
  1918. Sophie was seated with Langdon and Teabing near the front of the cabin—the Fan Jet Executive Elite Design, according to the gold medallion on the door. Their plush swivel chairs were bolted to tracks on the floor and could be repositioned and locked around a rectangular hardwood table. A mini-boardroom. The dignified surroundings, however, did little to camouflage the less than dignified state of affairs in the rear of the plane where, in a separate seating area near the rest room, Teabing's manservant R?my sat with the pistol in hand, begrudgingly carrying out Teabing's orders to stand guard over the bloody monk who lay trussed at his feet like a piece of luggage.
  1919. Before we turn our attention to the keystone, Teabing said, I was wondering if you would permit me a few words. He sounded apprehensive, like a father about to give the birds-and-the-bees lecture to his children. My friends, I realize I am but a guest on this journey, and I am honored as such. And yet, as someone who has spent his life in search of the Grail, I feel it is my duty to warn you that you are about to step onto a path from which there is no return, regardless of the dangers involved. He turned to Sophie. Miss Neveu, your grandfather gave you this cryptex in hopes you would keep the secret of the Holy Grail alive.
  1920. Yes.
  1921. Understandably, you feel obliged to follow the trail wherever it leads.
  1922. Sophie nodded, although she felt a second motivation still burning within her. The truth about my family. Despite Langdon's assurances that the keystone had nothing to do with her past, Sophie still sensed something deeply personal entwined within this mystery, as if this cryptex, forged by her grandfather's own hands, were trying to speak to her and offer some kind of resolution to the emptiness that had haunted her all these years.
  1923. Your grandfather and three others died tonight, Teabing continued, and they did so to keep this keystone away from the Church. Opus Dei came within inches tonight of possessing it. You understand, I hope, that this puts you in a position of exceptional responsibility. You have been handed a torch. A two-thousand-year-old flame that cannot be allowed to go out. This torch cannot fall into the wrong hands. He paused, glancing at the rosewood box. I realize you have been given no choice in this matter, Miss Neveu, but considering what is at stake here, you must either fully embrace this responsibility... or you must pass that responsibility to someone else.
  1924. My grandfather gave the cryptex to me. I'm sure he thought I could handle the responsibility.
  1925. Teabing looked encouraged but unconvinced. Good. A strong will is necessary. And yet, I am curious if you understand that successfully unlocking the keystone will bring with it a far greater trial.
  1926. How so?
  1927. My dear, imagine that you are suddenly holding a map that reveals the location of the Holy Grail. In that moment, you will be in possession of a truth capable of altering history forever. You will be the keeper of a truth that man has sought for centuries. You will be faced with the responsibility of revealing that truth to the world. The individual who does so will be revered by many and despised by many. The question is whether you will have the necessary strength to carry out that task.
  1928. Sophie paused. I'm not sure that is my decision to make.
  1929. Teabing's eyebrows arched. No? If not the possessor of the keystone, then who?
  1930. The brotherhood who has successfully protected the secret for so long.
  1931. The Priory? Teabing looked skeptical. But how? The brotherhood was shattered tonight. Decapitated, as you so aptly put it. Whether they were infiltrated by some kind of eavesdropping or by a spy within their ranks, we will never know, but the fact remains that someone got to them and uncovered the identities of their four top members. I would not trust anyone who stepped forward from the brotherhood at this point.
  1932. So what do you suggest? Langdon asked.
  1933. Robert, you know as well as I do that the Priory has not protected the truth all these years to have it gather dust until eternity. They have been waiting for the right moment in history to share their secret. A time when the world is ready to handle the truth.
  1934. And you believe that moment has arrived? Langdon asked.
  1935. Absolutely. It could not be more obvious. All the historical signs are in place, and if the Priory did not intend to make their secret known very soon, why has the Church now attacked?
  1936. Sophie argued, The monk has not yet told us his purpose.
  1937. The monk's purpose is the Church's purpose, Teabing replied, to destroy the documents that reveal the great deception. The Church came closer tonight than they have ever come, and the Priory has put its trust in you, Miss Neveu. The task of saving the Holy Grail clearly includes carrying out the Priory's final wishes of sharing the truth with the world.
  1938. Langdon intervened. Leigh, asking Sophie to make that decision is quite a load to drop on someone who only an hour ago learned the Sangreal documents exist.
  1939. Teabing sighed. I apologize if I am pressing, Miss Neveu. Clearly I have always believed these documents should be made public, but in the end the decision belongs to you. I simply feel it is important that you begin to think about what happens should we succeed in opening the keystone.
  1940. Gentlemen, Sophie said, her voice firm. To quote your words, 'You do not find the Grail, the Grail finds you.' I am going to trust that the Grail has found me for a reason, and when the time comes, I will know what to do.
  1941. Both of them looked startled.
  1942. So then, she said, motioning to the rosewood box. Let's move on.
  1943.  
  1944. CHAPTER 70
  1945.  
  1946. Standing in the drawing room of Ch?teau Villette, Lieutenant Collet watched the dying fire and felt despondent. Captain Fache had arrived moments earlier and was now in the next room, yelling into the phone, trying to coordinate the failed attempt to locate the missing Range Rover.
  1947. It could be anywhere by now, Collet thought.
  1948. Having disobeyed Fache's direct orders and lost Langdon for a second time, Collet was grateful that PTS had located a bullet hole in the floor, which at least corroborated Collet's claims that a shot had been fired. Still, Fache's mood was sour, and Collet sensed there would be dire repercussions when the dust settled.
  1949. Unfortunately, the clues they were turning up here seemed to shed no light at all on what was going on or who was involved. The black Audi outside had been rented in a false name with false credit card numbers, and the prints in the car matched nothing in the Interpol database.
  1950. Another agent hurried into the living room, his eyes urgent. Where's Captain Fache?
  1951. Collet barely looked up from the burning embers. He's on the phone.
  1952. I'm off the phone, Fache snapped, stalking into the room. What have you got?
  1953. The second agent said, Sir, Central just heard from Andr? Vernet at the Depository Bank of Zurich. He wants to talk to you privately. He is changing his story.
  1954. Oh? Fache said.
  1955. Now Collet looked up.
  1956. Vernet is admitting that Langdon and Neveu spent time inside his bank tonight.
  1957. We figured that out, Fache said. Why did Vernet lie about it?
  1958. He said he'll talk only to you, but he's agreed to cooperate fully.
  1959. In exchange for what?
  1960. For our keeping his bank's name out of the news and also for helping him recover some stolen property. It sounds like Langdon and Neveu stole something from Saunière's account.
  1961. What? Collet blurted. How?
  1962. Fache never flinched, his eyes riveted on the second agent. What did they steal?
  1963. Vernet didn't elaborate, but he sounds like he's willing to do anything to get it back.
  1964. Collet tried to imagine how this could happen. Maybe Langdon and Neveu had held a bank employee at gunpoint? Maybe they forced Vernet to open Saunière's account and facilitate an escape in the armored truck. As feasible as it was, Collet was having trouble believing Sophie Neveu could be involved in anything like that.
  1965. From the kitchen, another agent yelled to Fache. Captain? I'm going through Mr. Teabing's speed dial numbers, and I'm on the phone with Le Bourget Airfield. I've got some bad news.
  1966.  
  1967. Thirty seconds later, Fache was packing up and preparing to leave Ch?teau Villette. He had just learned that Teabing kept a private jet nearby at Le Bourget Airfield and that the plane had taken off about a half hour ago.
  1968. The Bourget representative on the phone had claimed not to know who was on the plane or where it was headed. The takeoff had been unscheduled, and no flight plan had been logged. Highly illegal, even for a small airfield. Fache was certain that by applying the right pressure, he could get the answers he was looking for.
  1969. Lieutenant Collet, Fache barked, heading for the door. I have no choice but to leave you in charge of the PTS investigation here. Try to do something right for a change.
  1970.  
  1971. CHAPTER 71
  1972.  
  1973. As the Hawker leveled off, with its nose aimed for England, Langdon carefully lifted the rosewood box from his lap, where he had been protecting it during takeoff. Now, as he set the box on the table, he could sense Sophie and Teabing leaning forward with anticipation.
  1974. Unlatching the lid and opening the box, Langdon turned his attention not to the lettered dials of the cryptex, but rather to the tiny hole on the underside of the box lid. Using the tip of a pen, he carefully removed the inlaid Rose on top and revealed the text beneath it. Sub Rosa, he mused, hoping a fresh look at the text would bring clarity. Focusing all his energies, Langdon studied the strange text.
  1975.  
  1976. After several seconds, he began to feel the initial frustration resurfacing. Leigh, I just can't seem to place it.
  1977. From where Sophie was seated across the table, she could not yet see the text, but Langdon's inability to immediately identify the language surprised her. My grandfather spoke a language so obscure that even a symbologist can't identify it? She quickly realized she should not find this surprising. This would not be the first secret Jacques Saunière had kept from his granddaughter.
  1978.  
  1979. Opposite Sophie, Leigh Teabing felt ready to burst. Eager for his chance to see the text, he quivered with excitement, leaning in, trying to see around Langdon, who was still hunched over the box.
  1980. I don't know, Langdon whispered intently. My first guess is a Semitic, but now I'm not so sure. Most primary Semitics include nekkudot. This has none.
  1981. Probably ancient, Teabing offered.
  1982. Nekkudot? Sophie inquired.
  1983. Teabing never took his eyes from the box. Most modern Semitic alphabets have no vowels and use nekkudot—tiny dots and dashes written either below or within the consonants—to indicate what vowel sound accompanies them. Historically speaking, nekkudot are a relatively modern addition to language.
  1984. Langdon was still hovering over the script. A Sephardic transliteration, perhaps...?
  1985. Teabing could bear it no longer. Perhaps if I just... Reaching over, he edged the box away from Langdon and pulled it toward himself. No doubt Langdon had a solid familiarity with the standard ancients—Greek, Latin, the Romances—but from the fleeting glance Teabing had of this language, he thought it looked more specialized, possibly a Rashi script or a STA'M with crowns.
  1986. Taking a deep breath, Teabing feasted his eyes upon the engraving. He said nothing for a very long time. With each passing second, Teabing felt his confidence deflating. I'm astonished, he said. This language looks like nothing I've ever seen!
  1987. Langdon slumped.
  1988. Might I see it? Sophie asked.
  1989. Teabing pretended not to hear her. Robert, you said earlier that you thought you'd seen something like this before?
  1990. Langdon looked vexed. I thought so. I'm not sure. The script looks familiar somehow.
  1991. Leigh? Sophie repeated, clearly not appreciating being left out of the discussion. Might I have a look at the box my grandfather made?
  1992. Of course, dear, Teabing said, pushing it over to her. He hadn't meant to sound belittling, and yet Sophie Neveu was light-years out of her league. If a British Royal Historian and a Harvard symbologist could not even identify the language—
  1993. Aah, Sophie said, seconds after examining the box. I should have guessed.
  1994. Teabing and Langdon turned in unison, staring at her.
  1995. Guessed what? Teabing demanded.
  1996. Sophie shrugged. Guessed that this would be the language my grandfather would have used.
  1997. You're saying you can read this text? Teabing exclaimed.
  1998. Quite easily, Sophie chimed, obviously enjoying herself now. My grandfather taught me this language when I was only six years old. I'm fluent. She leaned across the table and fixed Teabing with an admonishing glare. And frankly, sir, considering your allegiance to the Crown, I'm a little surprised you didn't recognize it.
  1999. In a flash, Langdon knew.
  2000. No wonder the script looks so damned familiar!
  2001. Several years ago, Langdon had attended an event at Harvard's Fogg Museum. Harvard dropout Bill Gates had returned to his alma mater to lend to the museum one of his priceless acquisitions—eighteen sheets of paper he had recently purchased at auction from the Armand Hammar Estate.
  2002. His winning bid—a cool $30.8 million.
  2003. The author of the pages—Leonardo da Vinci.
  2004. The eighteen folios—now known as Leonardo's Codex Leicester after their famous owner, the Earl of Leicester—were all that remained of one of Leonardo's most fascinating notebooks: essays and drawings outlining Da Vinci's progressive theories on astronomy, geology, archaeology, and hydrology.
  2005. Langdon would never forget his reaction after waiting in line and finally viewing the priceless parchment. Utter letdown. The pages were unintelligible. Despite being beautifully preserved and written in an impeccably neat penmanship—crimson ink on cream paper—the codex looked like gibberish. At first Langdon thought he could not read them because Da Vinci wrote his notebooks in an archaic Italian. But after studying them more closely, he realized he could not identify a single Italian word, or even one letter.
  2006. Try this, sir, whispered the female docent at the display case. She motioned to a hand mirror affixed to the display on a chain. Langdon picked it up and examined the text in the mirror's surface.
  2007. Instantly it was clear.
  2008. Langdon had been so eager to peruse some of the great thinker's ideas that he had forgotten one of the man's numerous artistic talents was an ability to write in a mirrored script that was virtually illegible to anyone other than himself. Historians still debated whether Da Vinci wrote this way simply to amuse himself or to keep people from peering over his shoulder and stealing his ideas, but the point was moot. Da Vinci did as he pleased.
  2009.  
  2010. Sophie smiled inwardly to see that Robert understood her meaning. I can read the first few words, she said. It's English.
  2011. Teabing was still sputtering. What's going on?
  2012. Reverse text, Langdon said. We need a mirror.
  2013. No we don't, Sophie said. I bet this veneer is thin enough. She lifted the rosewood box up to a canister light on the wall and began examining the underside of the lid. Her grandfather couldn't actually write in reverse, so he always cheated by writing normally and then flipping the paper over and tracing the reversed impression. Sophie's guess was that he had wood-burned normal text into a block of wood and then run the back of the block through a sander until the wood was paper thin and the wood-burning could be seen through the wood. Then he'd simply flipped the piece over, and laid it in.
  2014. As Sophie moved the lid closer to the light, she saw she was right. The bright beam sifted through the thin layer of wood, and the script appeared in reverse on the underside of the lid.
  2015. Instantly legible.
  2016. English, Teabing croaked, hanging his head in shame. My native tongue.
  2017.  
  2018. At the rear of the plane, R?my Legaludec strained to hear beyond the rumbling engines, but the conversation up front was inaudible. R?my did not like the way the night was progressing. Not at all. He looked down at the bound monk at his feet. The man lay perfectly still now, as if in a trance of acceptance, or perhaps, in silent prayer for deliverance.
  2019.  
  2020. CHAPTER 72
  2021. Fifteen thousand feet in the air, Robert Langdon felt the physical world fade away as all of his thoughts converged on Saunière's mirror-image poem, which was illuminated through the lid of the box.
  2022.  
  2023. Sophie quickly found some paper and copied it down longhand. When she was done, the three of them took turns reading the text. It was like some kind of archaeological crossword... a riddle that promised to reveal how to open the cryptex. Langdon read the verse slowly.
  2024. An ancient word of wisdom frees this scroll... and helps us keep her scatter'd family whole... a headstone praised by templars is the key... and atbash will reveal the truth to thee.
  2025. Before Langdon could even ponder what ancient password the verse was trying to reveal, he felt something far more fundamental resonate within him—the meter of the poem. Iambic pentameter.
  2026. Langdon had come across this meter often over the years while researching secret societies across Europe, including just last year in the Vatican Secret Archives. For centuries, iambic pentameter had been a preferred poetic meter of outspoken literati across the globe, from the ancient Greek writer Archilochus to Shakespeare, Milton, Chaucer, and Voltaire—bold souls who chose to write their social commentaries in a meter that many of the day believed had mystical properties. The roots of iambic pentameter were deeply pagan.
  2027. Iambs. Two syllables with opposite emphasis. Stressed and unstressed. Yin yang. A balanced pair. Arranged in strings of five. Pentameter. Five for the pentacle of Venus and the sacred feminine.
  2028. It's pentameter! Teabing blurted, turning to Langdon. And the verse is in English! La lingua pura!
  2029. Langdon nodded. The Priory, like many European secret societies at odds with the Church, had considered English the only European pure language for centuries. Unlike French, Spanish, and Italian, which were rooted in Latin—the tongue of the Vatican—English was linguistically removed from Rome's propaganda machine, and therefore became a sacred, secret tongue for those brotherhoods educated enough to learn it.
  2030. This poem, Teabing gushed, references not only the Grail, but the Knights Templar and the scattered family of Mary Magdalene! What more could we ask for?
  2031. The password, Sophie said, looking again at the poem. It sounds like we need some kind of ancient word of wisdom?
  2032. Abracadabra? Teabing ventured, his eyes twinkling.
  2033. A word of five letters, Langdon thought, pondering the staggering number of ancient words that might be considered words of wisdom—selections from mystic chants, astrological prophecies, secret society inductions, Wicca incantations, Egyptian magic spells, pagan mantras—the list was endless.
  2034. The password, Sophie said, appears to have something to do with the Templars. She read the text aloud. 'A headstone praised by Templars is the key.'
  2035. Leigh, Langdon said, you're the Templar specialist. Any ideas?
  2036. Teabing was silent for several seconds and then sighed. Well, a headstone is obviously a grave marker of some sort. It's possible the poem is referencing a gravestone the Templars praised at the tomb of Magdalene, but that doesn't help us much because we have no idea where her tomb is.
  2037. The last line, Sophie said, says that Atbash will reveal the truth. I've heard that word. Atbash.
  2038. I'm not surprised, Langdon replied. You probably heard it in Cryptology 101. The Atbash Cipher is one of the oldest codes known to man.
  2039. Of course! Sophie thought. The famous Hebrew encoding system.
  2040. The Atbash Cipher had indeed been part of Sophie's early cryptology training. The cipher dated back to 500 B.C. and was now used as a classroom example of a basic rotational substitution scheme. A common form of Jewish cryptogram, the Atbash Cipher was a simple substitution code based on the twenty-two-letter Hebrew alphabet. In Atbash, the first letter was substituted by the last letter, the second letter by the next to last letter, and so on.
  2041. Atbash is sublimely appropriate, Teabing said. Text encrypted with Atbash is found throughout the Kabbala, the Dead Sea Scrolls, and even the Old Testament. Jewish scholars and mystics are still finding hidden meanings using Atbash. The Priory certainly would include the Atbash Cipher as part of their teachings.
  2042. The only problem, Langdon said, is that we don't have anything on which to apply the cipher.
  2043. Teabing sighed. There must be a code word on the headstone. We must find this headstone praised by Templars.
  2044. Sophie sensed from the grim look on Langdon's face that finding the Templar headstone would be no small feat.
  2045. Atbash is the key, Sophie thought. But we don't have a door.
  2046. It was three minutes later that Teabing heaved a frustrated sigh and shook his head. My friends, I'm stymied. Let me ponder this while I get us some nibblies and check on R?my and our guest. He stood up and headed for the back of the plane.
  2047. Sophie felt tired as she watched him go.
  2048. Outside the window, the blackness of the predawn was absolute. Sophie felt as if she were being hurtled through space with no idea where she would land. Having grown up solving her grandfather's riddles, she had the uneasy sense right now that this poem before them contained information they still had not seen.
  2049. There is more there, she told herself. Ingeniously hidden... but present nonetheless.
  2050. Also plaguing her thoughts was a fear that what they eventually found inside this cryptex would not be as simple as a map to the Holy Grail. Despite Teabing's and Langdon's confidence that the truth lay just within the marble cylinder, Sophie had solved enough of her grandfather's treasure hunts to know that Jacques Saunière did not give up his secrets easily.
  2051.  
  2052. CHAPTER 73
  2053.  
  2054. Bourget Airfield's night shift air traffic controller had been dozing before a blank radar screen when the captain of the Judicial Police practically broke down his door.
  2055. Teabing's jet, Bezu Fache blared, marching into the small tower, where did it go?
  2056. The controller's initial response was a babbling, lame attempt to protect the privacy of their British client—one of the airfield's most respected customers. It failed miserably.
  2057. Okay, Fache said, I am placing you under arrest for permitting a private plane to take off without registering a flight plan. Fache motioned to another officer, who approached with handcuffs, and the traffic controller felt a surge of terror. He thought of the newspaper articles debating whether the nation's police captain was a hero or a menace. That question had just been answered.
  2058. Wait! the controller heard himself whimper at the sight of the handcuffs. I can tell you this much. Sir Leigh Teabing makes frequent trips to London for medical treatments. He has a hangar at Biggin Hill Executive Airport in Kent. On the outskirts of London.
  2059. Fache waved off the man with the cuffs. Is Biggin Hill his destination tonight?
  2060. I don't know, the controller said honestly. The plane left on its usual tack, and his last radar contact suggested the United Kingdom. Biggin Hill is an extremely likely guess.
  2061. Did he have others onboard?
  2062. I swear, sir, there is no way for me to know that. Our clients can drive directly to their hangars, and load as they please. Who is onboard is the responsibility of the customs officials at the receiving airport.
  2063. Fache checked his watch and gazed out at the scattering of jets parked in front of the terminal. If they're going to Biggin Hill, how long until they land?
  2064. The controller fumbled through his records. It's a short flight. His plane could be on the ground by... around six-thirty. Fifteen minutes from now.
  2065. Fache frowned and turned to one of his men. Get a transport up here. I'm going to London. And get me the Kent local police. Not British MI5. I want this quiet. Kent local. Tell them I want Teabing's plane to be permitted to land. Then I want it surrounded on the tarmac. Nobody deplanes until I get there.
  2066.  
  2067. CHAPTER 74
  2068.  
  2069. You're quiet, Langdon said, gazing across the Hawker's cabin at Sophie.
  2070. Just tired, she replied. And the poem. I don't know.
  2071. Langdon was feeling the same way. The hum of the engines and the gentle rocking of the plane were hypnotic, and his head still throbbed where he'd been hit by the monk. Teabing was still in the back of the plane, and Langdon decided to take advantage of the moment alone with Sophie to tell her something that had been on his mind. I think I know part of the reason why your grandfather conspired to put us together. I think there's something he wanted me to explain to you.
  2072. The history of the Holy Grail and Mary Magdalene isn't enough?
  2073. Langdon felt uncertain how to proceed. The rift between you. The reason you haven't spoken to him in ten years. I think maybe he was hoping I could somehow make that right by explaining what drove you apart.
  2074. Sophie squirmed in her seat. I haven't told you what drove us apart.
  2075. Langdon eyed her carefully. You witnessed a sex rite. Didn't you?
  2076. Sophie recoiled. How do you know that?
  2077. Sophie, you told me you witnessed something that convinced you your grandfather was in a secret society. And whatever you saw upset you enough that you haven't spoken to him since. I know a fair amount about secret societies. It doesn't take the brains of Da Vinci to guess what you saw.
  2078. Sophie stared.
  2079. Was it in the spring? Langdon asked. Sometime around the equinox? Mid-March?
  2080. Sophie looked out the window. I was on spring break from university. I came home a few days early.
  2081. You want to tell me about it?
  2082. I'd rather not. She turned suddenly back to Langdon, her eyes welling with emotion. I don't know what I saw.
  2083. Were both men and women present?
  2084. After a beat, she nodded.
  2085. Dressed in white and black?
  2086. She wiped her eyes and then nodded, seeming to open up a little. The women were in white gossamer gowns... with golden shoes. They held golden orbs. The men wore black tunics and black shoes.
  2087. Langdon strained to hide his emotion, and yet he could not believe what he was hearing. Sophie Neveu had unwittingly witnessed a two-thousand-year-old sacred ceremony. Masks? he asked, keeping his voice calm. Androgynous masks?
  2088. Yes. Everyone. Identical masks. White on the women. Black on the men.
  2089. Langdon had read descriptions of this ceremony and understood its mystic roots. It's called Hieros Gamos, he said softly. It dates back more than two thousand years. Egyptian priests and priestesses performed it regularly to celebrate the reproductive power of the female, He paused, leaning toward her. And if you witnessed Hieros Gamos without being properly prepared to understand its meaning, I imagine it would be pretty shocking.
  2090. Sophie said nothing.
  2091. Hieros Gamos is Greek, he continued. It means sacred marriage.
  2092. The ritual I saw was no marriage.
  2093. Marriage as in union, Sophie.
  2094. You mean as in sex.
  2095. No.
  2096. No? she said, her olive eyes testing him.
  2097. Langdon backpedaled. Well... yes, in a manner of speaking, but not as we understand it today. He explained that although what she saw probably looked like a sex ritual, Hieros Gamos had nothing to do with eroticism. It was a spiritual act. Historically, intercourse was the act through which male and female experienced God. The ancients believed that the male was spiritually incomplete until he had carnal knowledge of the sacred feminine. Physical union with the female remained the sole means through which man could become spiritually complete and ultimately achieve gnosis—knowledge of the divine. Since the days of Isis, sex rites had been considered man's only bridge from earth to heaven. By communing with woman, Langdon said, man could achieve a climactic instant when his mind went totally blank and he could see God.
  2098. Sophie looked skeptical. Orgasm as prayer?
  2099. Langdon gave a noncommittal shrug, although Sophie was essentially correct. Physiologically speaking, the male climax was accompanied by a split second entirely devoid of thought. A brief mental vacuum. A moment of clarity during which God could be glimpsed. Meditation gurus achieved similar states of thoughtlessness without sex and often described Nirvana as a never-ending spiritual orgasm.
  2100. Sophie, Langdon said quietly, it's important to remember that the ancients' view of sex was entirely opposite from ours today. Sex begot new life—the ultimate miracle—and miracles could be performed only by a god. The ability of the woman to produce life from her womb made her sacred. A god. Intercourse was the revered union of the two halves of the human spirit—male and female—through which the male could find spiritual wholeness and communion with God. What you saw was not about sex, it was about spirituality. The Hieros Gamos ritual is not a perversion. It's a deeply sacrosanct ceremony.
  2101. His words seemed to strike a nerve. Sophie had been remarkably poised all evening, but now, for the first time, Langdon saw the aura of composure beginning to crack. Tears materialized in her eyes again, and she dabbed them away with her sleeve.
  2102. He gave her a moment. Admittedly, the concept of sex as a pathway to God was mind-boggling at first. Langdon's Jewish students always looked flabbergasted when he first told them that the early Jewish tradition involved ritualistic sex. In the Temple, no less. Early Jews believed that the Holy of Holies in Solomon's Temple housed not only God but also His powerful female equal, Shekinah. Men seeking spiritual wholeness came to the Temple to visit priestesses—or hierodules—with whom they made love and experienced the divine through physical union. The Jewish tetragrammaton YHWH—the sacred name of God—in fact derived from Jehovah, an androgynous physical union between the masculine Jah and the pre-Hebraic name for Eve, Havah.
  2103. For the early Church, Langdon explained in a soft voice, mankind's use of sex to commune directly with God posed a serious threat to the Catholic power base. It left the Church out of the loop, undermining their self-proclaimed status as the sole conduit to God. For obvious reasons, they worked hard to demonize sex and recast it as a disgusting and sinful act. Other major religions did the same.
  2104. Sophie was silent, but Langdon sensed she was starting to understand her grandfather better. Ironically, Langdon had made this same point in a class lecture earlier this semester. Is it surprising we feel conflicted about sex? he asked his students. Our ancient heritage and our very physiologies tell us sex is natural—a cherished route to spiritual fulfillment—and yet modern religion decries it as shameful, teaching us to fear our sexual desire as the hand of the devil.
  2105. Langdon decided not to shock his students with the fact that more than a dozen secret societies around the world—many of them quite influential—still practiced sex rites and kept the ancient traditions alive. Tom Cruise's character in the film Eyes Wide Shut discovered this the hard way when he sneaked into a private gathering of ultraelite Manhattanites only to find himself witnessing Hieros Gamos. Sadly, the filmmakers had gotten most of the specifics wrong, but the basic gist was there—a secret society communing to celebrate the magic of sexual union.
  2106. Professor Langdon? A male student in back raised his hand, sounding hopeful. Are you saying that instead of going to chapel, we should have more sex?
  2107. Langdon chuckled, not about to take the bait. From what he'd heard about Harvard parties, these kids were having more than enough sex. Gentlemen, he said, knowing he was on tender ground, might I offer a suggestion for all of you. Without being so bold as to condone premarital sex, and without being so naive as to think you're all chaste angels, I will give you this bit of advice about your sex lives.
  2108. All the men in the audience leaned forward, listening intently.
  2109. The next time you find yourself with a woman, look in your heart and see if you cannot approach sex as a mystical, spiritual act. Challenge yourself to find that spark of divinity that man can only achieve through union with the sacred feminine.
  2110. The women smiled knowingly, nodding.
  2111. The men exchanged dubious giggles and off-color jokes.
  2112. Langdon sighed. College men were still boys.
  2113.  
  2114. Sophie's forehead felt cold as she pressed it against the plane's window and stared blankly into the void, trying to process what Langdon had just told her. She felt a new regret well within her. Ten years. She pictured the stacks of unopened letters her grandfather had sent her. I will tell Robert everything. Without turning from the window, Sophie began to speak. Quietly. Fearfully.
  2115. As she began to recount what had happened that night, she felt herself drifting back... alighting in the woods outside her grandfather's Normandy ch?teau... searching the deserted house in confusion... hearing the voices below her... and then finding the hidden door. She inched down the stone staircase, one step at a time, into that basement grotto. She could taste the earthy air. Cool and light. It was March. In the shadows of her hiding place on the staircase, she watched as the strangers swayed and chanted by flickering orange candles.
  2116. I'm dreaming, Sophie told herself. This is a dream. What else could this be?
  2117. The women and men were staggered, black, white, black, white. The women's beautiful gossamer gowns billowed as they raised in their right hands golden orbs and called out in unison, I was with you in the beginning, in the dawn of all that is holy, I bore you from the womb before the start of day.
  2118. The women lowered their orbs, and everyone rocked back and forth as if in a trance. They were revering something in the center of the circle.
  2119. What are they looking at?
  2120. The voices accelerated now. Louder. Faster.
  2121. The woman whom you behold is love! The women called, raising their orbs again.
  2122. The men responded, She has her dwelling in eternity!
  2123. The chanting grew steady again. Accelerating. Thundering now. Faster. The participants stepped inward and knelt.
  2124. In that instant, Sophie could finally see what they were all watching.
  2125. On a low, ornate altar in the center of the circle lay a man. He was naked, positioned on his back, and wearing a black mask. Sophie instantly recognized his body and the birthmark on his shoulder. She almost cried out. Grand-père! This image alone would have shocked Sophie beyond belief, and yet there was more.
  2126. Straddling her grandfather was a naked woman wearing a white mask, her luxuriant silver hair flowing out behind it. Her body was plump, far from perfect, and she was gyrating in rhythm to the chanting—making love to Sophie's grandfather.
  2127. Sophie wanted to turn and run, but she couldn't. The stone walls of the grotto imprisoned her as the chanting rose to a fever pitch. The circle of participants seemed almost to be singing now, the noise rising in crescendo to a frenzy. With a sudden roar, the entire room seemed to erupt in climax. Sophie could not breathe. She suddenly realized she was quietly sobbing. She turned and staggered silently up the stairs, out of the house, and drove trembling back to Paris.
  2128.  
  2129. CHAPTER 75
  2130.  
  2131. The chartered turboprop was just passing over the twinkling lights of Monaco when Aringarosa hung up on Fache for the second time. He reached for the airsickness bag again but felt too drained even to be sick.
  2132. Just let it be over!
  2133. Fache's newest update seemed unfathomable, and yet almost nothing tonight made sense anymore. What is going on? Everything had spiraled wildly out of control. What have I gotten Silas into? What have I gotten myself into!
  2134. On shaky legs, Aringarosa walked to the cockpit. I need to change destinations.
  2135. The pilot glanced over his shoulder and laughed. You're joking, right?
  2136. No. I have to get to London immediately.
  2137. Father, this is a charter flight, not a taxi.
  2138. I will pay you extra, of course. How much? London is only one hour farther north and requires almost no change of direction, so—
  2139. It's not a question of money, Father, there are other issues.
  2140. Ten thousand euro. Right now.
  2141. The pilot turned, his eyes wide with shock. How much? What kind of priest carries that kind of cash?
  2142. Aringarosa walked back to his black briefcase, opened it, and removed one of the bearer bonds. He handed it to the pilot.
  2143. What is this? the pilot demanded.
  2144. A ten-thousand-euro bearer bond drawn on the Vatican Bank.
  2145. The pilot looked dubious.
  2146. It's the same as cash.
  2147. Only cash is cash, the pilot said, handing the bond back.
  2148. Aringarosa felt weak as he steadied himself against the cockpit door. This is a matter of life or death. You must help me. I need to get to London.
  2149. The pilot eyed the bishop's gold ring. Real diamonds?
  2150. Aringarosa looked at the ring. I could not possibly part with this.
  2151. The pilot shrugged, turning and focusing back out the windshield.
  2152. Aringarosa felt a deepening sadness. He looked at the ring. Everything it represented was about to be lost to the bishop anyway. After a long moment, he slid the ring from his finger and placed it gently on the instrument panel.
  2153. Aringarosa slunk out of the cockpit and sat back down. Fifteen seconds later, he could feel the pilot banking a few more degrees to the north.
  2154. Even so, Aringarosa's moment of glory was in shambles.
  2155. It had all begun as a holy cause. A brilliantly crafted scheme. Now, like a house of cards, it was collapsing in on itself... and the end was nowhere in sight.
  2156.  
  2157. CHAPTER 76
  2158.  
  2159. Langdon could see Sophie was still shaken from recounting her experience of Hieros Gamos. For his part, Langdon was amazed to have heard it. Not only had Sophie witnessed the full-blown ritual, but her own grandfather had been the celebrant... the Grand Master of the Priory of Sion. It was heady company. Da Vinci, Botticelli, Isaac Newton, Victor Hugo, Jean Cocteau... Jacques Saunière.
  2160. I don't know what else I can tell you, Langdon said softly.
  2161. Sophie's eyes were a deep green now, tearful. He raised me like his own daughter.
  2162. Langdon now recognized the emotion that had been growing in her eyes as they spoke. It was remorse. Distant and deep. Sophie Neveu had shunned her grandfather and was now seeing him in an entirely different light.
  2163. Outside, the dawn was coming fast, its crimson aura gathering off the starboard. The earth was still black beneath them.
  2164. Victuals, my dears? Teabing rejoined them with a flourish, presenting several cans of Coke and a box of old crackers. He apologized profusely for the limited fare as he doled out the goods. Our friend the monk isn't talking yet, he chimed, but give him time. He bit into a cracker and eyed the poem. So, my lovely, any headway? He looked at Sophie. What is your grandfather trying to tell us here? Where the devil is this headstone? This headstone praised by Templars.
  2165. Sophie shook her head and remained silent.
  2166. While Teabing again dug into the verse, Langdon popped a Coke and turned to the window, his thoughts awash with images of secret rituals and unbroken codes. A headstone praised by Templars is the key. He took a long sip from the can. A headstone praised by Templars. The cola was warm.
  2167. The dissolving veil of night seemed to evaporate quickly, and as Langdon watched the transformation, he saw a shimmering ocean stretch out beneath them. The English Channel. It wouldn't be long now.
  2168. Langdon willed the light of day to bring with it a second kind of illumination, but the lighter it became outside, the further he felt from the truth. He heard the rhythms of iambic pentameter and chanting, Hieros Gamos and sacred rites, resonating with the rumble of the jet.
  2169. A headstone praised by Templars.
  2170. The plane was over land again when a flash of enlightenment struck him. Langdon set down his empty can of Coke hard. You won't believe this, he said, turning to the others. The Templar headstone—I figured it out.
  2171. Teabing's eyes turned to saucers. You know where the headstone is?
  2172. Langdon smiled. Not where it is. What it is.
  2173. Sophie leaned in to hear.
  2174. I think the headstone references a literal stone head, Langdon explained, savoring the familiar excitement of academic breakthrough. Not a grave marker.
  2175. A stone head? Teabing demanded.
  2176. Sophie looked equally confused.
  2177. Leigh, Langdon said, turning, during the Inquisition, the Church accused the Knights Templar of all kinds of heresies, right?
  2178. Correct. They fabricated all kinds of charges. Sodomy, urination on the cross, devil worship, quite a list.
  2179. And on that list was the worship of false idols, right? Specifically, the Church accused the Templars of secretly performing rituals in which they prayed to a carved stone head... the pagan god—
  2180. Baphomet! Teabing blurted. My heavens, Robert, you're right! A headstone praised by Templars!
  2181. Langdon quickly explained to Sophie that Baphomet was a pagan fertility god associated with the creative force of reproduction. Baphomet's head was represented as that of a ram or goat, a common symbol of procreation and fecundity. The Templars honored Baphomet by encircling a stone replica of his head and chanting prayers.
  2182. Baphomet, Teabing tittered. The ceremony honored the creative magic of sexual union, but Pope Clement convinced everyone that Baphomet's head was in fact that of the devil. The Pope used the head of Baphomet as the linchpin in his case against the Templars.
  2183. Langdon concurred. The modern belief in a horned devil known as Satan could be traced back to Baphomet and the Church's attempts to recast the horned fertility god as a symbol of evil. The Church had obviously succeeded, although not entirely. Traditional American Thanksgiving tables still bore pagan, horned fertility symbols. The cornucopia or horn of plenty was a tribute to Baphomet's fertility and dated back to Zeus being suckled by a goat whose horn broke off and magically filled with fruit. Baphomet also appeared in group photographs when some joker raised two fingers behind a friend's head in the V-symbol of horns; certainly few of the pranksters realized their mocking gesture was in fact advertising their victim's robust sperm count.
  2184. Yes, yes, Teabing was saying excitedly. Baphomet must be what the poem is referring to. A headstone praised by Templars.
  2185. Okay, Sophie said, but if Baphomet is the headstone praised by Templars, then we have a new dilemma. She pointed to the dials on the cryptex. Baphomet has eight letters. We only have room for five.
  2186. Teabing grinned broadly. My dear, this is where the Atbash Cipher comes into play
  2187.  
  2188. CHAPTER 77
  2189.  
  2190. Langdon was impressed. Teabing had just finished writing out the entire twenty-two-letter Hebrew alphabet—alef-beit—from memory. Granted, he'd used Roman equivalents rather than Hebrew characters, but even so, he was now reading through them with flawless pronunciation.
  2191. A B G D H V Z Ch T Y K L M N S O P Tz Q R Sh Th
  2192. Alef, Beit, Gimel, Dalet, Hei, Vav, Zayin, Chet, Tet, Yud, Kaf, Lamed, Mem, Nun, Samech, Ayin, Pei, Tzadik, Kuf, Reish, Shin, and Tav. Teabing dramatically mopped his brow and plowed on. In formal Hebrew spelling, the vowel sounds are not written. Therefore, when we write the word Baphomet using the Hebrew alphabet, it will lose its three vowels in translation, leaving us—
  2193. Five letters, Sophie blurted.
  2194. Teabing nodded and began writing again. Okay, here is the proper spelling of Baphomet in Hebrew letters. I'll sketch in the missing vowels for clarity's sake.
  2195. B a P V o M e Th
  2196.  
  2197. Remember, of course, he added, that Hebrew is normally written in the opposite direction, but we can just as easily use Atbash this way. Next, all we have to do is create our substitution scheme by rewriting the entire alphabet in reverse order opposite the original alphabet.
  2198. There's an easier way, Sophie said, taking the pen from Teabing. It works for all reflectional substitution ciphers, including the Atbash. A little trick I learned at the Royal Holloway. Sophie wrote the first half of the alphabet from left to right, and then, beneath it, wrote the second half, right to left. Cryptanalysts call it the fold-over. Half as complicated. Twice as clean.
  2199. A
  2200. B
  2201. G
  2202. D
  2203. H
  2204. V
  2205. Z
  2206. Ch
  2207. T
  2208. Y
  2209. K
  2210. Th
  2211. Sh
  2212. R
  2213. Q
  2214. Tz
  2215. P
  2216. O
  2217. S
  2218. N
  2219. M
  2220. L
  2221.  
  2222. Teabing eyed her handiwork and chuckled. Right you are. Glad to see those boys at the Holloway are doing their job.
  2223. Looking at Sophie's substitution matrix, Langdon felt a rising thrill that he imagined must have rivaled the thrill felt by early scholars when they first used the Atbash Cipher to decrypt the now famous Mystery of Sheshach. For years, religious scholars had been baffled by biblical references to a city called Sheshach. The city did not appear on any map nor in any other documents, and yet it was mentioned repeatedly in the Book of Jeremiah—the king of Sheshach, the city of Sheshach, the people of Sheshach. Finally, a scholar applied the Atbash Cipher to the word, and his results were mind-numbing. The cipher revealed that Sheshach was in fact a code word for another very well-known city. The decryption process was simple.
  2224. Sheshach, in Hebrew, was spelled: Sh-Sh-K.
  2225. Sh-Sh-K, when placed in the substitution matrix, became B-B-L.
  2226. B-B-L, in Hebrew, spelled Babel.
  2227. The mysterious city of Sheshach was revealed as the city of Babel, and a frenzy of biblical examination ensued. Within weeks, several more Atbash code words were uncovered in the Old Testament, unveiling myriad hidden meanings that scholars had no idea were there.
  2228. We're getting close, Langdon whispered, unable to control his excitement.
  2229. Inches, Robert, Teabing said. He glanced over at Sophie and smiled. You ready?
  2230. She nodded.
  2231. Okay, Baphomet in Hebrew without the vowels reads: B-P-V-M-Th. Now we simply apply your Atbash substitution matrix to translate the letters into our five-letter password.
  2232. Langdon's heart pounded. B-P-V-M-Th. The sun was pouring through the windows now. He looked at Sophie's substitution matrix and slowly began to make the conversion. B is Sh... P is V...
  2233. Teabing was grinning like a schoolboy at Christmas. And the Atbash Cipher reveals... He stopped short. Good God! His face went white.
  2234. Langdon's head snapped up.
  2235. What's wrong? Sophie demanded.
  2236. You won't believe this. Teabing glanced at Sophie. Especially you.
  2237. What do you mean? she said.
  2238. This is... ingenious, he whispered. Utterly ingenious! Teabing wrote again on the paper. Drumroll, please. Here is your password. He showed them what he had written.
  2239. Sh-V-P-Y-A
  2240.  
  2241. Sophie scowled. What is it?
  2242. Langdon didn't recognize it either.
  2243. Teabing's voice seemed to tremble with awe. This, my friend, is actually an ancient word of wisdom.
  2244. Langdon read the letters again. An ancient word of wisdom frees this scroll. An instant later he got it. He had newer seen this coming. An ancient word of wisdom!
  2245. Teabing was laughing. Quite literally!
  2246. Sophie looked at the word and then at the dial. Immediately she realized Langdon and Teabing had failed to see a serious glitch. Hold on! This can't be the password, she argued. The cryptex doesn't have an Sh on the dial. It uses a traditional Roman alphabet.
  2247. Read the word, Langdon urged. Keep in mind two things. In Hebrew, the symbol for the sound Sh can also be pronounced as S, depending on the accent. Just as the letter P can be pronounced F.
  2248. SVFYA? she thought, puzzled.
  2249. Genius! Teabing added. The letter Vav is often a placeholder for the vowel sound O!
  2250. Sophie again looked at the letters, attempting to sound them out.
  2251. S...o...f...y...a.
  2252. She heard the sound of her voice, and could not believe what she had just said. Sophia? This spells Sophia?
  2253. Langdon was nodding enthusiastically. Yes! Sophia literally means wisdom in Greek. The root of your name, Sophie, is literally a 'word of wisdom.'
  2254. Sophie suddenly missed her grandfather immensely. He encrypted the Priory keystone with my name. A knot caught in her throat. It all seemed so perfect. But as she turned her gaze to the five lettered dials on the cryptex, she realized a problem still existed. But wait... the word Sophia has six letters.
  2255. Teabing's smile never faded. Look at the poem again. Your grandfather wrote, 'An ancient word of wisdom.'
  2256. Yes?
  2257. Teabing winked. In ancient Greek, wisdom is spelled S-O-F-I-A.
  2258.  
  2259. CHAPTER 78
  2260.  
  2261. Sophie felt a wild excitement as she cradled the cryptex and began dialing in the letters. An ancient word of wisdom frees this scroll. Langdon and Teabing seemed to have stopped breathing as they looked on.
  2262. S... O... F...
  2263. Carefully, Teabing urged. Ever so carefully.
  2264. ...I... A.
  2265. Sophie aligned the final dial. Okay, she whispered, glancing up at the others. I'm going to pull it apart.
  2266. Remember the vinegar, Langdon whispered with fearful exhilaration. Be careful.
  2267. Sophie knew that if this cryptex were like those she had opened in her youth, all she would need to do is grip the cylinder at both ends, just beyond the dials, and pull, applying slow, steady pressure in opposite directions. If the dials were properly aligned with the password, then one of the ends would slide off, much like a lens cap, and she could reach inside and remove the rolled papyrus document, which would be wrapped around the vial of vinegar. However, if the password they had entered were incorrect, Sophie's outward force on the ends would be transferred to a hinged lever inside, which would pivot downward into the cavity and apply pressure to the glass vial, eventually shattering it if she pulled too hard.
  2268. Pull gently, she told herself.
  2269. Teabing and Langdon both leaned in as Sophie wrapped her palms around the ends of the cylinder. In the excitement of deciphering the code word, Sophie had almost forgotten what they expected to find inside. This is the Priory keystone. According to Teabing, it contained a map to the Holy Grail, unveiling the tomb of Mary Magdalene and the Sangreal treasure... the ultimate treasure trove of secret truth.
  2270. Now gripping the stone tube, Sophie double-checked that all of the letters were properly aligned with the indicator. Then, slowly, she pulled. Nothing happened. She applied a little more force. Suddenly, the stone slid apart like a well-crafted telescope. The heavy end piece detached in her hand. Langdon and Teabing almost jumped to their feet. Sophie's heart rate climbed as she set the end cap on the table and tipped the cylinder to peer inside.
  2271. A scroll!
  2272. Peering down the hollow of the rolled paper, Sophie could see it had been wrapped around a cylindrical object—the vial of vinegar, she assumed. Strangely, though, the paper around the vinegar was not the customary delicate papyrus but rather, vellum. That's odd, she thought, vinegar can't dissolve a lambskin vellum. She looked again down the hollow of the scroll and realized the object in the center was not a vial of vinegar after all. It was something else entirely.
  2273. What's wrong? Teabing asked. Pull out the scroll.
  2274. Frowning, Sophie grabbed the rolled vellum and the object around which it was wrapped, pulling them both out of the container.
  2275. That's not papyrus, Teabing said. It's too heavy.
  2276. I know. It's padding.
  2277. For what? The vial of vinegar?
  2278. No. Sophie unrolled the scroll and revealed what was wrapped inside. For this.
  2279. When Langdon saw the object inside the sheet of vellum, his heart sank.
  2280. God help us, Teabing said, slumping. Your grandfather was a pitiless architect.
  2281. Langdon stared in amazement. I see Saunière has no intention of making this easy.
  2282. On the table sat a second cryptex. Smaller. Made of black onyx. It had been nested within the first. Saunière's passion for dualism. Two cryptexes. Everything in pairs. Double entendres. Male female. Black nested within white. Langdon felt the web of symbolism stretching onward. White gives birth to black.
  2283. Every man sprang from woman.
  2284. White—female.
  2285. Black—male.
  2286. Reaching over, Langdon lifted the smaller cryptex. It looked identical to the first, except half the size and black. He heard the familiar gurgle. Apparently, the vial of vinegar they had heard earlier was inside this smaller cryptex.
  2287. Well, Robert, Teabing said, sliding the page of vellum over to him.
  2288. You'll be pleased to hear that at least we're flying in the right direction.
  2289. Langdon examined the thick vellum sheet. Written in ornate penmanship was another four-line verse. Again, in iambic pentameter. The verse was cryptic, but Langdon needed to read only as far as the first line to realize that Teabing's plan to come to Britain was going to pay off.
  2290. IN LONDON LIES A KNIGHT A POPE INTERRED.
  2291.  
  2292. The remainder of the poem clearly implied that the password for opening the second cryptex could be found by visiting this knight's tomb, somewhere in the city.
  2293. Langdon turned excitedly to Teabing. Do you have any idea what knight this poem is referring to?
  2294. Teabing grinned. Not the foggiest. But I know in precisely which crypt we should look.
  2295.  
  2296. At that moment, fifteen miles ahead of them, six Kent police cars streaked down rain-soaked streets toward Biggin Hill Executive Airport.
  2297.  
  2298. CHAPTER 79
  2299.  
  2300. Lieutenant Collet helped himself to a Perrier from Teabing's refrigerator and strode back out through the drawing room. Rather than accompanying Fache to London where the action was, he was now baby-sitting the PTS team that had spread out through Ch?teau Villette.
  2301. So far, the evidence they had uncovered was unhelpful: a single bullet buried in the floor; a paper with several symbols scrawled on it along with the words blade and chalice; and a bloody spiked belt that PTS had told Collet was associated with the conservative Catholic group Opus Dei, which had caused a stir recently when a news program exposed their aggressive recruiting practices in Paris.
  2302. Collet sighed. Good luck making sense of this unlikely m?lange.
  2303. Moving down a lavish hallway, Collet entered the vast ballroom study, where the chief PTS examiner was busy dusting for fingerprints. He was a corpulent man in suspenders.
  2304. Anything? Collet asked, entering.
  2305. The examiner shook his head. Nothing new. Multiple sets matching those in the rest of the house.
  2306. How about the prints on the cilice belt?
  2307. Interpol is still working. I uploaded everything we found.
  2308. Collet motioned to two sealed evidence bags on the desk. And this?
  2309. The man shrugged. Force of habit. I bag anything peculiar.
  2310. Collet walked over. Peculiar?
  2311. This Brit's a strange one, the examiner said. Have a look at this. He sifted through the evidence bags and selected one, handing it to Collet.
  2312. The photo showed the main entrance of a Gothic cathedral—the traditional, recessed archway, narrowing through multiple, ribbed layers to a small doorway.
  2313. Collet studied the photo and turned. This is peculiar?
  2314. Turn it over.
  2315. On the back, Collet found notations scrawled in English, describing a cathedral's long hollow nave as a secret pagan tribute to a woman's womb. This was strange. The notation describing the cathedral's doorway, however, was what startled him. Hold on! He thinks a cathedral's entrance represents a woman's...
  2316. The examiner nodded. Complete with receding labial ridges and a nice little cinquefoil clitoris above the doorway. He sighed. Kind of makes you want to go back to church.
  2317. Collet picked up the second evidence bag. Through the plastic, he could see a large glossy photograph of what appeared to be an old document. The heading at the top read:
  2318. Les Dossiers Secrets—Number 4° lm1 249
  2319. What's this? Collet asked.
  2320. No idea. He's got copies of it all over the place, so I bagged it.
  2321. Collet studied the document.
  2322. PRIEURE DE SIGN—LES NAUTONIERS/GRAND MASTERS
  2323. JEAN DE GISORS
  2324. 1188-1220
  2325. MARIE DE SAINT-CLAIR
  2326. 1220-1266
  2327. GUILLAUME DE GlSORS
  2328. 1266-1307
  2329. EDOUARD DE BAR
  2330. 1307-1336
  2331. JEANNE DE BAR
  2332. 1336-1351
  2333. JEAN DE SAINT-CLAIR
  2334. 1351-1366
  2335. BLANCE D'EVREUX
  2336. 1366-1398
  2337. NICOLAS FLAMEL
  2338. 1398-1418
  2339. RENE D'ANJOU
  2340. 1418-1480
  2341. IOLANDE DE BAR
  2342. 1480-1483
  2343. SANDRO BOTTICELLI
  2344. 1483-1510
  2345. LEONARDO DA VINCI
  2346. 1510-1519
  2347. CONNETABLE DE BOURBON
  2348. 1519-1527
  2349. FERDINAND DE GONZAQUE
  2350. 1527-1575
  2351. LOUIS DE NEVERS
  2352. 1575-1595
  2353. ROBERT FLUDD
  2354. 1595-1637
  2355. J. VALENTIN ANDREA
  2356. 1637-1654
  2357. ROBERT BOYLE
  2358. 1654-1691
  2359. ISAAC NEWTON
  2360. 1691-1727
  2361. CHARLES RADCLYFFE
  2362. 1727-1746
  2363. CHARLES DE LORRAINE
  2364. 1746-1780
  2365. MAXIMILIAN DE LORRAINE
  2366. 1780-1801
  2367. CHARLES NODIER
  2368. 1801-1844
  2369. VICTOR HUGO
  2370. 1844-1885
  2371. CLAUDE DEBUSSY
  2372. 1885-1918
  2373. JEAN COCTEAU
  2374. 1918-1963
  2375.  
  2376. Prieur? de Sion? Collet wondered.
  2377. Lieutenant? Another agent stuck his head in. The switchboard has an urgent call for Captain Fache, but they can't reach him. Will you take it?
  2378. Collet returned to the kitchen and took the call.
  2379. It was Andr? Vernet.
  2380. The banker's refined accent did little to mask the tension in his voice. I thought Captain Fache said he would call me, but I have not yet heard from him.
  2381. The captain is quite busy, Collet replied. May I help you?
  2382. I was assured I would be kept abreast of your progress tonight.
  2383. For a moment, Collet thought he recognized the timbre of the man's voice, but he couldn't quite place it. Monsieur Vernet, I am currently in charge of the Paris investigation. My name is Lieutenant Collet.
  2384. There was a long pause on the line. Lieutenant, I have another call coming in. Please excuse me. I will call you later. He hung up.
  2385. For several seconds, Collet held the receiver. Then it dawned on him. I knew I recognized that voice! The revelation made him gasp.
  2386. The armored car driver.
  2387. With the fake Rolex.
  2388. Collet now understood why the banker had hung up so quickly. Vernet had remembered the name Lieutenant Collet—the officer he blatantly lied to earlier tonight.
  2389. Collet pondered the implications of this bizarre development. Vernet is involved. Instinctively, he knew he should call Fache. Emotionally, he knew this lucky break was going to be his moment to shine.
  2390. He immediately called Interpol and requested every shred of information they could find on the Depository Bank of Zurich and its president, Andr? Vernet.
  2391.  
  2392. CHAPTER 80
  2393.  
  2394. Seat belts, please, Teabing's pilot announced as the Hawker 731 descended into a gloomy morning drizzle. We'll be landing in five minutes.
  2395. Teabing felt a joyous sense of homecoming when he saw the misty hills of Kent spreading wide beneath the descending plane. England was less than an hour from Paris, and yet a world away. This morning, the damp, spring green of his homeland looked particularly welcoming. My time in France is over. I am returning to England victorious. The keystone has been found. The question remained, of course, as to where the keystone would ultimately lead. Somewhere in the United Kingdom. Where exactly, Teabing had no idea, but he was already tasting the glory.
  2396. As Langdon and Sophie looked on, Teabing got up and went to the far side of the cabin, then slid aside a wall panel to reveal a discreetly hidden wall safe. He dialed in the combination, opened the safe, and extracted two passports. Documentation for R?my and myself. He then removed a thick stack of fifty-pound notes. And documentation for you two.
  2397. Sophie looked leery. A bribe?
  2398. Creative diplomacy. Executive airfields make certain allowances. A British customs official will greet us at my hangar and ask to board the plane. Rather than permitting him to come on, I'll tell him I'm traveling with a French celebrity who prefers that nobody knows she is in England—press considerations, you know—and I'll offer the official this generous tip as gratitude for his discretion.
  2399. Langdon looked amazed. And the official will accept?
  2400. Not from anyone, they won't, but these people all know me. I'm not an arms dealer, for heaven's sake. I was knighted. Teabing smiled. Membership has its privileges.
  2401. R?my approached up the aisle now, the Heckler Koch pistol cradled in his hand. Sir, my agenda?
  2402. Teabing glanced at his servant. I'm going to have you stay onboard with our guest until we return. We can't very well drag him all over London with us.
  2403. Sophie looked wary. Leigh, I was serious about the French police finding your plane before we return.
  2404. Teabing laughed. Yes, imagine their surprise if they board and find R?my.
  2405. Sophie looked surprised by his cavalier attitude. Leigh, you transported a bound hostage across international borders. This is serious.
  2406. So are my lawyers. He scowled toward the monk in the rear of the plane. That animal broke into my home and almost killed me. That is a fact, and R?my will corroborate.
  2407. But you tied him up and flew him to London! Langdon said.
  2408. Teabing held up his right hand and feigned a courtroom oath. Your honor, forgive an eccentric old knight his foolish prejudice for the British court system. I realize I should have called the French authorities, but I'm a snob and do not trust those laissez-faire French to prosecute properly. This man almost murdered me. Yes, I made a rash decision forcing my manservant to help me bring him to England, but I was under great stress. Mea culpa. Mea culpa.
  2409. Langdon looked incredulous. Coming from you, Leigh, that just might fly.
  2410. Sir? the pilot called back. The tower just radioed. They've got some kind of maintenance problem out near your hangar, and they're asking me to bring the plane directly to the terminal instead.
  2411. Teabing had been flying to Biggin Hill for over a decade, and this was a first. Did they mention what the problem is?
  2412. The controller was vague. Something about a gas leak at the pumping station? They asked me to park in front of the terminal and keep everyone onboard until further notice. Safety precaution. We're not supposed to deplane until we get the all clear from airport authorities.
  2413. Teabing was skeptical. Must be one hell of a gas leak. The pumping station was a good half mile from his hangar.
  2414. R?my also looked concerned. Sir, this sounds highly irregular.
  2415. Teabing turned to Sophie and Langdon. My friends, I have an unpleasant suspicion that we are about to be met by a welcoming committee.
  2416. Langdon gave a bleak sigh. I guess Fache still thinks I'm his man.
  2417. Either that, Sophie said, or he is too deep into this to admit his error.
  2418. Teabing was not listening. Regardless of Fache's mind-set, action needed to be taken fast. Don't lose sight of the ultimate goal. The Grail. We're so dose. Below them, the landing gear descended with a clunk.
  2419. Leigh, Langdon said, sounding deeply remorseful, I should turn myself in and sort this out legally. Leave you all out of it.
  2420. Oh, heavens, Robert! Teabing waved it off. Do you really think they're going to let the rest of us go? I just transported you illegally. Miss Neveu assisted in your escape from the Louvre, and we have a man tied up in the back of the plane. Really now! We're all in this together.
  2421. Maybe a different airport? Sophie said.
  2422. Teabing shook his head. If we pull up now, by the time we get clearance anywhere else, our welcoming party will include army tanks.
  2423. Sophie slumped.
  2424. Teabing sensed that if they were to have any chance of postponing confrontation with the British authorities long enough to find the Grail, bold action had to be taken. Give me a minute, he said, hobbling toward the cockpit.
  2425. What are you doing? Langdon asked.
  2426. Sales meeting, Teabing said, wondering how much it would cost him to persuade his pilot to perform one highly irregular maneuver.
  2427.  
  2428. CHAPTER 81
  2429.  
  2430. The Hawker is on final approach.
  2431. Simon Edwards—Executive Services Officer at Biggin Hill Airport—paced the control tower, squinting nervously at the rain-drenched runway. He never appreciated being awoken early on a Saturday morning, but it was particularly distasteful that he had been called in to oversee the arrest of one of his most lucrative clients. Sir Leigh Teabing paid Biggin Hill not only for a private hangar but a per landing fee for his frequent arrivals and departures. Usually, the airfield had advance warning of his schedule and was able to follow a strict protocol for his arrival. Teabing liked things just so. The custom-built Jaguar stretch limousine that he kept in his hangar was to be fully gassed, polished, and the day's London Times laid out on the back seat. A customs official was to be waiting for the plane at the hangar to expedite the mandatory documentation and luggage check. Occasionally, customs agents accepted large tips from Teabing in exchange for turning a blind eye to the transport of harmless organics—mostly luxury foods—French escargots, a particularly ripe unprocessed Roquefort, certain fruits. Many customs laws were absurd, anyway, and if Biggin Hill didn't accommodate its clients, certainly competing airfields would. Teabing was provided with what he wanted here at Biggin Hill, and the employees reaped the benefits.
  2432. Edwards's nerves felt frayed now as he watched the jet coming in. He wondered if Teabing's penchant for spreading the wealth had gotten him in trouble somehow; the French authorities seemed very intent on containing him. Edwards had not yet been told what the charges were, but they were obviously serious. At the French authorities' request, Kent police had ordered the Biggin Hill air traffic controller to radio the Hawker's pilot and order him directly to the terminal rather than to the client's hangar. The pilot had agreed, apparently believing the far-fetched story of a gas leak.
  2433. Though the British police did not generally carry weapons, the gravity of the situation had brought out an armed response team. Now, eight policemen with handguns stood just inside the terminal building, awaiting the moment when the plane's engines powered down. The instant this happened, a runway attendant would place safety wedges under the tires so the plane could no longer move. Then the police would step into view and hold the occupants at bay until the French police arrived to handle the situation.
  2434. The Hawker was low in the sky now, skimming the treetops to their right. Simon Edwards went downstairs to watch the landing from tarmac level. The Kent police were poised, just out of sight, and the maintenance man waited with his wedges. Out on the runway, the Hawker's nose tipped up, and the tires touched down in a puff of smoke. The plane settled in for deceleration, streaking from right to left in front of the terminal, its white hull glistening in the wet weather. But rather than braking and turning into the terminal, the jet coasted calmly past the access lane and continued on toward Teabing's hangar in the distance.
  2435. All the police spun and stared at Edwards. I thought you said the pilot agreed to come to the terminal!
  2436. Edwards was bewildered. He did!
  2437. Seconds later, Edwards found himself wedged in a police car racing across the tarmac toward the distant hangar. The convoy of police was still a good five hundred yards away as Teabing's Hawker taxied calmly into the private hangar and disappeared. When the cars finally arrived and skidded to a stop outside the gaping hangar door, the police poured out, guns drawn.
  2438. Edwards jumped out too.
  2439. The noise was deafening.
  2440. The Hawker's engines were still roaring as the jet finished its usual rotation inside the hangar, positioning itself nose-out in preparation for later departure. As the plane completed its 180-degree turn and rolled toward the front of the hangar, Edwards could see the pilot's face, which understandably looked surprised and fearful to see the barricade of police cars.
  2441. The pilot brought the plane to a final stop, and powered down the engines. The police streamed in, taking up positions around the jet. Edwards joined the Kent chief inspector, who moved warily toward the hatch. After several seconds, the fuselage door popped open.
  2442. Leigh Teabing appeared in the doorway as the plane's electronic stairs smoothly dropped down. As he gazed out at the sea of weapons aimed at him, he propped himself on his crutches and scratched his head. Simon, did I win the policemen's lottery while I was away? He sounded more bewildered than concerned.
  2443. Simon Edwards stepped forward, swallowing the frog in his throat. Good morning, sir. I apologize for the confusion. We've had a gas leak and your pilot said he was coming to the terminal.
  2444. Yes, yes, well, I told him to come here instead. I'm late for an appointment. I pay for this hangar, and this rubbish about avoiding a gas leak sounded overcautious.
  2445. I'm afraid your arrival has taken us a bit off guard, sir.
  2446. I know. I'm off my schedule, I am. Between you and me, the new medication gives me the tinkles. Thought I'd come over for a tune-up.
  2447. The policemen all exchanged looks. Edwards winced. Very good, sir.
  2448. Sir, the Kent chief inspector said, stepping forward. I need to ask you to stay onboard for another half hour or so.
  2449. Teabing looked unamused as he hobbled down the stairs. I'm afraid that is impossible. I have a medical appointment. He reached the tarmac. I cannot afford to miss it.
  2450. The chief inspector repositioned himself to block Teabing's progress away from the plane. I am here at the orders of the French Judicial Police. They claim you are transporting fugitives from the law on this plane.
  2451. Teabing stared at the chief inspector a long moment, and then burst out laughing. Is this one of those hidden camera programs? Jolly good!
  2452. The chief inspector never flinched. This is serious, sir. The French police claim you also may have a hostage onboard.
  2453. Teabing's manservant R?my appeared in the doorway at the top of the stairs. I feel like a hostage working for Sir Leigh, but he assures me I am free to go. R?my checked his watch. Master, we really are running late. He nodded toward the Jaguar stretch limousine in the far corner of the hangar. The enormous automobile was ebony with smoked glass and whitewall tires. I'll bring the car. R?my started down the stairs.
  2454. I'm afraid we cannot let you leave, the chief inspector said. Please return to your aircraft. Both of you. Representatives from the French police will be landing shortly.
  2455. Teabing looked now toward Simon Edwards. Simon, for heaven's sake, this is ridiculous! We don't have anyone else on board. Just the usual—R?my, our pilot, and myself. Perhaps you could act as an intermediary? Go have a look onboard, and verify that the plane is empty.
  2456. Edwards knew he was trapped. Yes, sir. I can have a look.
  2457. The devil you will! the Kent chief inspector declared, apparently knowing enough about executive airfields to suspect Simon Edwards might well lie about the plane's occupants in an effort to keep Teabing's business at Biggin Hill. I will look myself.
  2458. Teabing shook his head. No you won't, Inspector. This is private property and until you have a search warrant, you will stay off my plane. I am offering you a reasonable option here. Mr. Edwards can perform the inspection.
  2459. No deal.
  2460. Teabing's demeanor turned frosty. Inspector, I'm afraid I don't have time to indulge in your games. I'm late, and I'm leaving. If it is that important to you to stop me, you'll just have to shoot me. With that, Teabing and R?my walked around the chief inspector and headed across the hangar toward the parked limousine.
  2461.  
  2462. The Kent chief inspector felt only distaste for Leigh Teabing as the man hobbled around him in defiance. Men of privilege always felt like they were above the law.
  2463. They are not. The chief inspector turned and aimed at Teabing's back. Stop! I will fire!
  2464. Go ahead, Teabing said without breaking stride or glancing back. My lawyers will fricassee your testicles for breakfast. And if you dare board my plane without a warrant, your spleen will follow.
  2465. No stranger to power plays, the chief inspector was unimpressed. Technically, Teabing was correct and the police needed a warrant to board his jet, but because the flight had originated in France, and because the powerful Bezu Fache had given his authority, the Kent chief inspector felt certain his career would be far better served by finding out what it was on this plane that Teabing seemed so intent on hiding.
  2466. Stop them, the inspector ordered. I'm searching the plane.
  2467. His men raced over, guns leveled, and physically blocked Teabing and his servant from reaching the limousine.
  2468. Now Teabing turned. Inspector, this is your last warning. Do not even think of boarding that plane. You will regret it.
  2469. Ignoring the threat, the chief inspector gripped his sidearm and marched up the plane's gangway. Arriving at the hatch, he peered inside. After a moment, he stepped into the cabin. What the devil?
  2470. With the exception of the frightened-looking pilot in the cockpit, the aircraft was empty. Entirely devoid of human life. Quickly checking the bathroom, the chairs, and the luggage areas, the inspector found no traces of anyone hiding... much less multiple individuals.
  2471. What the hell was Bezu Fache thinking? It seemed Leigh Teabing had been telling the truth.
  2472. The Kent chief inspector stood alone in the deserted cabin and swallowed hard. Shit. His face flushed, he stepped back onto the gangway, gazing across the hangar at Leigh Teabing and his servant, who were now under gunpoint near the limousine. Let them go, the inspector ordered. We received a bad tip.
  2473. Teabing's eyes were menacing even across the hangar. You can expect a call from my lawyers. And for future reference, the French police cannot be trusted.
  2474. With that, Teabing's manservant opened the door at the rear of the stretch limousine and helped his crippled master into the back seat. Then the servant walked the length of the car, climbed in behind the wheel, and gunned the engine. Policemen scattered as the Jaguar peeled out of the hangar.
  2475.  
  2476. Well played, my good man, Teabing chimed from the rear seat as the limousine accelerated out of the airport. He turned his eyes now to the dimly lit front recesses of the spacious interior. Everyone comfy?
  2477. Langdon gave a weak nod. He and Sophie were still crouched on the floor beside the bound and gagged albino.
  2478. Moments earlier, as the Hawker taxied into the deserted hangar, R?my had popped the hatch as the plane jolted to a stop halfway through its turn. With the police closing in fast, Langdon and Sophie dragged the monk down the gangway to ground level and out of sight behind the limousine. Then the jet engines had roared again, rotating the plane and completing its turn as the police cars came skidding into the hangar.
  2479. Now, as the limousine raced toward Kent, Langdon and Sophie clambered toward the rear of the limo's long interior, leaving the monk bound on the floor. They settled onto the long seat facing Teabing. The Brit gave them both a roguish smile and opened the cabinet on the limo's bar. Could I offer you a drink? Some nibblies? Crisps? Nuts? Seltzer?
  2480. Sophie and Langdon both shook their heads.
  2481. Teabing grinned and closed the bar. So then, about this knight's tomb...
  2482.  
  2483. CHAPTER 82
  2484.  
  2485. Fleet Street? Langdon asked, eyeing Teabing in the back of the limo. There's a crypt on Fleet Street? So far, Leigh was being playfully cagey about where he thought they would find the knight's tomb, which, according to the poem, would provide the password for opening the smaller cryptex.
  2486. Teabing grinned and turned to Sophie. Miss Neveu, give the Harvard boy one more shot at the verse, will you?
  2487. Sophie fished in her pocket and pulled out the black cryptex, which was wrapped in the vellum. Everyone had decided to leave the rosewood box and larger cryptex behind in the plane's strongbox, carrying with them only what they needed, the far more portable and discreet black cryptex. Sophie unwrapped the vellum and handed the sheet to Langdon.
  2488. Although Langdon had read the poem several times onboard the jet, he had been unable to extract any specific location. Now, as he read the words again, he processed them slowly and carefully, hoping the pentametric rhythms would reveal a clearer meaning now that he was on the ground.
  2489. In London lies a knight a Pope interred.
  2490. His labor's fruit a Holy wrath incurred.
  2491. You seek the orb that ought be on his tomb.
  2492. It speaks of Rosy flesh and seeded womb.
  2493.  
  2494. The language seemed simple enough. There was a knight buried in London. A knight who labored at something that angered the Church. A knight whose tomb was missing an orb that should be present. The poem's final reference—Rosy flesh and seeded womb—was a clear allusion to Mary Magdalene, the Rose who bore the seed of Jesus.
  2495. Despite the apparent straightforwardness of the verse, Langdon still had no idea who this knight was or where he was buried. Moreover, once they located the tomb, it sounded as if they would be searching for something that was absent. The orb that ought be on his tomb?
  2496. No thoughts? Teabing clucked in disappointment, although Langdon sensed the Royal Historian was enjoying being one up. Miss Neveu?
  2497. She shook her head.
  2498. What would you two do without me? Teabing said. Very well, I will walk you through it. It's quite simple really. The first line is the key. Would you read it please?
  2499. Langdon read aloud. 'In London lies a knight a Pope interred.'
  2500. Precisely. A knight a Pope interred. He eyed Langdon. What does that mean to you?
  2501. Langdon shrugged. A knight buried by a Pope? A knight whose funeral was presided over by a Pope?
  2502. Teabing laughed loudly. Oh, that's rich. Always the optimist, Robert. Look at the second line. This knight obviously did something that incurred the Holy wrath of the Church. Think again. Consider the dynamic between the Church and the Knights Templar. A knight a Pope interred?
  2503. A knight a Pope killed? Sophie asked.
  2504. Teabing smiled and patted her knee. Well done, my dear. A knight a Pope buried. Or killed.
  2505. Langdon thought of the notorious Templar round-up in 1307—unlucky Friday the thirteenth—when Pope Clement killed and interred hundreds of Knights Templar. But there must be endless graves of 'knights killed by Popes.'
  2506. Aha, not so! Teabing said. Many of them were burned at the stake and tossed unceremoniously into the Tiber River. But this poem refers to a tomb. A tomb in London. And there are few knights buried in London. He paused, eyeing Langdon as if waiting for light to dawn. Finally he huffed. Robert, for heaven's sake! The church built in London by the Priory's military arm—the Knights Templar themselves!
  2507. The Temple Church? Langdon drew a startled breath. It has a crypt?
  2508. Ten of the most frightening tombs you will ever see.
  2509. Langdon had never actually visited the Temple Church, although he'd come across numerous references in his Priory research. Once the epicenter of all Templar/Priory activities in the United Kingdom, the Temple Church had been so named in honor of Solomon's Temple, from which the Knights Templar had extracted their own title, as well as the Sangreal documents that gave them all their influence in Rome. Tales abounded of knights performing strange, secretive rituals within the Temple Church's unusual sanctuary. The Temple Church is on Fleet Street?
  2510. Actually, it's just off Fleet Street on Inner Temple Lane. Teabing looked mischievous. I wanted to see you sweat a little more before I gave it away.
  2511. Thanks.
  2512. Neither of you has ever been there?
  2513. Sophie and Langdon shook their heads.
  2514. I'm not surprised, Teabing said. The church is hidden now behind much larger buildings. Few people even know it's there. Eerie old place. The architecture is pagan to the core.
  2515. Sophie looked surprised. Pagan?
  2516. Pantheonically pagan! Teabing exclaimed. The church is round. The Templars ignored the traditional Christian cruciform layout and built a perfectly circular church in honor of the sun. His eyebrows did a devilish dance. A not so subtle howdy-do to the boys in Rome. They might as well have resurrected Stonehenge in downtown London.
  2517. Sophie eyed Teabing. What about the rest of the poem?
  2518. The historian's mirthful air faded. I'm not sure. It's puzzling. We will need to examine each of the ten tombs carefully. With luck, one of them will have a conspicuously absent orb.
  2519. Langdon realized how close they really were. If the missing orb revealed the password, they would be able to open the second cryptex. He had a hard time imagining what they might find inside.
  2520. Langdon eyed the poem again. It was like some kind of primordial crossword puzzle. A five-letter word that speaks of the Grail? On the plane, they had already tried all the obvious passwords—GRAIL, GRAAL, GREAL, VENUS, MARIA, JESUS, SARAH—but the cylinder had not budged. Far too obvious. Apparently there existed some other five-letter reference to the Rose's seeded womb. The fact that the word was eluding a specialist like Leigh Teabing signified to Langdon that it was no ordinary Grail reference.
  2521. Sir Leigh? R?my called over his shoulder. He was watching them in the rearview mirror through the open divider. You said Fleet Street is near Blackfriars Bridge?
  2522. Yes, take Victoria Embankment.
  2523. I'm sorry. I'm not sure where that is. We usually go only to the hospital.
  2524. Teabing rolled his eyes at Langdon and Sophie and grumbled, I swear, sometimes it's like baby-sitting a child. One moment please. Help yourself to a drink and savory snacks. He left them, clambering awkwardly toward the open divider to talk to R?my.
  2525. Sophie turned to Langdon now, her voice quiet. Robert, nobody knows you and I are in England.
  2526. Langdon realized she was right. The Kent police would tell Fache the plane was empty, and Fache would have to assume they were still in France. We are invisible. Leigh's little stunt had just bought them a lot of time.
  2527. Fache will not give up easily, Sophie said. He has too much riding on this arrest now.
  2528. Langdon had been trying not to think about Fache. Sophie had promised she would do everything in her power to exonerate Langdon once this was over, but Langdon was starting to fear it might not matter. Fache could easily be pan of this plot. Although Langdon could not imagine the Judicial Police tangled up in the Holy Grail, he sensed too much coincidence tonight to disregard Fache as a possible accomplice. Fache is religions, and he is intent on pinning these murders on me. Then again, Sophie had argued that Fache might simply be overzealous to make the arrest. After all, the evidence against Langdon was substantial. In addition to Langdon's name scrawled on the Louvre floor and in Saunière's date book, Langdon now appeared to have lied about his manuscript and then run away. At Sophie's suggestion.
  2529. Robert, I'm sorry you're so deeply involved, Sophie said, placing her hand on his knee. But I'm very glad you're here.
  2530. The comment sounded more pragmatic than romantic, and yet Langdon felt an unexpected flicker of attraction between them. He gave her a tired smile. I'm a lot more fun when I've slept.
  2531. Sophie was silent for several seconds. My grandfather asked me to trust you. I'm glad I listened to him for once.
  2532. Your grandfather didn't even know me.
  2533. Even so, I can't help but think you've done everything he would have wanted. You helped me find the keystone, explained the Sangreal, told me about the ritual in the basement. She paused. Somehow I feel closer to my grandfather tonight than I have in years. I know he would be happy about that.
  2534. In the distance, now, the skyline of London began to materialize through the dawn drizzle. Once dominated by Big Ben and Tower Bridge, the horizon now bowed to the Millennium Eye—a colossal, ultramodern Ferris wheel that climbed five hundred feet and afforded breathtaking views of the city. Langdon had attempted to board it once, but the viewing capsules reminded him of sealed sarcophagi, and he opted to keep his feet on the ground and enjoy the view from the airy banks of the Thames.
  2535. Langdon felt a squeeze on his knee, pulling him back, and Sophie's green eyes were on him. He realized she had been speaking to him. What do you think we should do with the Sangreal documents if we ever find them? she whispered.
  2536. What I think is immaterial, Langdon said. Your grandfather gave the cryptex to you, and you should do with it what your instinct tells you he would want done.
  2537. I'm asking for your opinion. You obviously wrote something in that manuscript that made my grandfather trust your judgment. He scheduled a private meeting with you. That's rare.
  2538. Maybe he wanted to tell me I have it all wrong.
  2539. Why would he tell me to find you unless he liked your ideas? In your manuscript, did you support the idea that the Sangreal documents should be revealed or stay buried?
  2540. Neither. I made no judgment either way. The manuscript deals with the symbology of the sacred feminine—tracing her iconography throughout history. I certainly didn't presume to know where the Grail is hidden or whether it should ever be revealed.
  2541. And yet you're writing a book about it, so you obviously feel the information should be shared.
  2542. There's an enormous difference between hypothetically discussing an alternate history of Christ, and... He paused.
  2543. And what?
  2544. And presenting to the world thousands of ancient documents as scientific evidence that the New Testament is false testimony.
  2545. But you told me the New Testament is based on fabrications.
  2546. Langdon smiled. Sophie, every faith in the world is based on fabrication. That is the definition of faith—acceptance of that which we imagine to be true, that which we cannot prove. Every religion describes God through metaphor, allegory, and exaggeration, from the early Egyptians through modern Sunday school. Metaphors are a way to help our minds process the unprocessible. The problems arise when we begin to believe literally in our own metaphors.
  2547. So you are in favor of the Sangreal documents staying buried forever?
  2548. I'm a historian. I'm opposed to the destruction of documents, and I would love to see religious scholars have more information to ponder the exceptional life of Jesus Christ.
  2549. You're arguing both sides of my question.
  2550. Am I? The Bible represents a fundamental guidepost for millions of people on the planet, in much the same way the Koran, Torah, and Pali Canon offer guidance to people of other religions. If you and I could dig up documentation that contradicted the holy stories of Islamic belief, Judaic belief, Buddhist belief, pagan belief, should we do that? Should we wave a flag and tell the Buddhists that we have proof the Buddha did not come from a lotus blossom? Or that Jesus was not born of a literal virgin birth? Those who truly understand their faiths understand the stories are metaphorical.
  2551. Sophie looked skeptical. My friends who are devout Christians definitely believe that Christ literally walked on water, literally turned water into wine, and was born of a literal virgin birth.
  2552. My point exactly, Langdon said. Religious allegory has become a part of the fabric of reality. And living in that reality helps millions of people cope and be better people.
  2553. But it appears their reality is false.
  2554. Langdon chuckled. No more false than that of a mathematical cryptographer who believes in the imaginary number 'i' because it helps her break codes.
  2555. Sophie frowned. That's not fair.
  2556. A moment passed.
  2557. What was your question again? Langdon asked.
  2558. I can't remember.
  2559. He smiled. Works every time.
  2560.  
  2561. CHAPTER 83
  2562.  
  2563. Langdon's Mickey Mouse wristwatch read almost seven-thirty when he emerged from the Jaguar limousine onto Inner Temple Lane with Sophie and Teabing. The threesome wound through a maze of buildings to a small courtyard outside the Temple Church. The rough-hewn stone shimmered in the rain, and doves cooed in the architecture overhead.
  2564. London's ancient Temple Church was constructed entirely of Caen stone. A dramatic, circular edifice with a daunting facade, a central turret, and a protruding nave off one side, the church looked more like a military stronghold than a place of worship. Consecrated on the tenth of February in 1185 by Heraclius, Patriarch of Jerusalem, the Temple Church survived eight centuries of political turmoil, the Great Fire of London, and the First World War, only to be heavily damaged by Luftwaffe incendiary bombs in 1940. After the war, it was restored to its original, stark grandeur.
  2565. The simplicity of the circle, Langdon thought, admiring the building for the first time. The architecture was coarse and simple, more reminiscent of Rome's rugged Castel Sant'Angelo than the refined Pantheon. The boxy annex jutting out to the right was an unfortunate eyesore, although it did little to shroud the original pagan shape of the primary structure.
  2566. It's early on a Saturday, Teabing said, hobbling toward the entrance, so I'm assuming we won't have services to deal with.
  2567. The church's entryway was a recessed stone niche inside which stood a large wooden door. To the left of the door, looking entirely out of place, hung a bulletin board covered with concert schedules and religious service announcements.
  2568. Teabing frowned as he read the board. They don't open to sightseers for another couple of hours. He moved to the door and tried it. The door didn't budge. Putting his ear to the wood, he listened. After a moment, he pulled back, a scheming look on his face as he pointed to the bulletin board. Robert, check the service schedule, will you? Who is presiding this week?
  2569.  
  2570. Inside the church, an altar boy was almost finished vacuuming the communion kneelers when he heard a knocking on the sanctuary door. He ignored it. Father Harvey Knowles had his own keys and was not due for another couple of hours. The knocking was probably a curious tourist or indigent. The altar boy kept vacuuming, but the knocking continued. Can't you read? The sign on the door clearly stated that the church did not open until nine-thirty on Saturday. The altar boy remained with his chores.
  2571. Suddenly, the knocking turned to a forceful banging, as if someone were hitting the door with a metal rod. The young man switched off his vacuum cleaner and marched angrily toward the door. Unlatching it from within, he swung it open. Three people stood in the entryway. Tourists, he grumbled. We open at nine-thirty.
  2572. The heavyset man, apparently the leader, stepped forward using metal crutches. I am Sir Leigh Teabing, he said, his accent a highbrow, Saxonesque British. As you are no doubt aware, I am escorting Mr. and Mrs. Christopher Wren the Fourth. He stepped aside, flourishing his arm toward the attractive couple behind them. The woman was soft-featured, with lush burgundy hair. The man was tall, dark-haired, and looked vaguely familiar.
  2573. The altar boy had no idea how to respond. Sir Christopher Wren was the Temple Church's most famous benefactor. He had made possible all the restorations following damage caused by the Great Fire. He had also been dead since the early eighteenth century. Um... an honor to meet you?
  2574. The man on crutches frowned. Good thing you're not in sales, young man, you're not very convincing. Where is Father Knowles?
  2575. It's Saturday. He's not due in until later.
  2576. The crippled man's scowl deepened. There's gratitude. He assured us he would be here, but it looks like we'll do it without him. It won't take long.
  2577. The altar boy remained blocking the doorway. I'm sorry, what won't take long?
  2578. The visitor's eyes sharpened now, and he leaned forward whispering as if to save everyone some embarrassment. Young man, apparently you are new here. Every year Sir Christopher Wren's descendants bring a pinch of the old man's ashes to scatter in the Temple sanctuary. It is part of his last will and testament. Nobody is particularly happy about making the trip, but what can we do?
  2579. The altar boy had been here a couple of years but had never heard of this custom. It would be better if you waited until nine-thirty. The church isn't open yet, and I'm not finished hoovering.
  2580. The man on crutches glared angrily. Young man, the only reason there's anything left of this building for you to hoover is on account of the gentleman in that woman's pocket.
  2581. I'm sorry?
  2582. Mrs. Wren, the man on crutches said, would you be so kind as to show this impertinent young man the reliquary of ashes?
  2583. The woman hesitated a moment and then, as if awaking from a trance, reached in her sweater pocket and pulled out a small cylinder wrapped in protective fabric.
  2584. There, you see? the man on crutches snapped. Now, you can either grant his dying wish and let us sprinkle his ashes in the sanctuary, or I tell Father Knowles how we've been treated.
  2585. The altar boy hesitated, well acquainted with Father Knowles' deep observance of church tradition... and, more importantly, with his foul temper when anything cast this time-honored shrine in anything but favorable light. Maybe Father Knowles had simply forgotten these family members were coming. If so, then there was far more risk in turning them away than in letting them in. After all, they said it would only take a minute. What harm could it do?
  2586. When the altar boy stepped aside to let the three people pass, he could have sworn Mr. and Mrs. Wren looked just as bewildered by all of this as he was. Uncertain, the boy returned to his chores, watching them out of the corner of his eye.
  2587.  
  2588. Langdon had to smile as the threesome moved deeper into the church.
  2589. Leigh, he whispered, you lie entirely too well.
  2590. Teabing's eyes twinkled. Oxford Theatre Club. They still talk of my Julius Caesar. I'm certain nobody has ever performed the first scene of Act Three with more dedication.
  2591. Langdon glanced over. I thought Caesar was dead in that scene.
  2592. Teabing smirked. Yes, but my toga tore open when I fell, and I had to lie on stage for half an hour with my todger hanging out. Even so, I never moved a muscle. I was brilliant, I tell you.
  2593. Langdon cringed. Sorry I missed it.
  2594. As the group moved through the rectangular annex toward the archway leading into the main church, Langdon was surprised by the barren austerity. Although the altar layout resembled that of a linear Christian chapel, the furnishings were stark and cold, bearing none of the traditional ornamentation. Bleak, he whispered.
  2595. Teabing chuckled. Church of England. Anglicans drink their religion straight. Nothing to distract from their misery.
  2596. Sophie motioned through the vast opening that gave way to the circular section of the church. It looks like a fortress in there, she whispered.
  2597. Langdon agreed. Even from here, the walls looked unusually robust.
  2598. The Knights Templar were warriors, Teabing reminded, the sound of his aluminum crutches echoing in this reverberant space. A religio-military society. Their churches were their strongholds and their banks.
  2599. Banks? Sophie asked, glancing at Leigh.
  2600. Heavens, yes. The Templars invented the concept of modern banking. For European nobility, traveling with gold was perilous, so the Templars allowed nobles to deposit gold in their nearest Temple Church and then draw it from any other Temple Church across Europe. All they needed was proper documentation. He winked. And a small commission. They were the original ATMs. Teabing pointed toward a stained-glass window where the breaking sun was refracting through a white-clad knight riding a rose-colored horse. Alanus Marcel, Teabing said, Master of the Temple in the early twelve hundreds. He and his successors actually held the Parliamentary chair of Primus Baro Angiae.
  2601. Langdon was surprised. First Baron of the Realm?
  2602. Teabing nodded. The Master of the Temple, some claim, held more influence than the king himself. As they arrived outside the circular chamber, Teabing shot a glance over his shoulder at the altar boy, who was vacuuming in the distance. You know, Teabing whispered to Sophie, the Holy Grail is said to once have been stored in this church overnight while the Templars moved it from one hiding place to another. Can you imagine the four chests of Sangreal documents sitting right here with Mary Magdalene's sarcophagus? It gives me gooseflesh.
  2603. Langdon was feeling gooseflesh too as they stepped into the circular chamber. His eye traced the curvature of the chamber's pale stone perimeter, taking in the carvings of gargoyles, demons, monsters, and pained human faces, all staring inward. Beneath the carvings, a single stone pew curled around the entire circumference of the room.
  2604. Theater in the round, Langdon whispered.
  2605. Teabing raised a crutch, pointing toward the far left of the room and then to the far right. Langdon had already seen them.
  2606. Ten stone knights.
  2607. Five on the left. Five on the right.
  2608. Lying prone on the floor, the carved, life-sized figures rested in peaceful poses. The knights were depicted wearing full armor, shields, and swords, and the tombs gave Langdon the uneasy sensation that someone had snuck in and poured plaster over the knights while they were sleeping. All of the figures were deeply weathered, and yet each was clearly unique—different armory pieces, distinct leg and arm positions, facial features, and markings on their shields.
  2609. In London lies a knight a Pope interred.
  2610. Langdon felt shaky as he inched deeper into the circular room.
  2611. This had to be the place.
  2612.  
  2613. CHAPTER 84
  2614.  
  2615. In a rubbish-strewn alley very close to Temple Church, R?my Legaludec pulled the Jaguar limousine to a stop behind a row of industrial waste bins. Killing the engine, he checked the area. Deserted. He got out of the car, walked toward the rear, and climbed back into the limousine's main cabin where the monk was.
  2616. Sensing R?my's presence, the monk in the back emerged from a prayer-like trance, his red eyes looking more curious than fearful. All evening R?my had been impressed with this trussed man's ability to stay calm. After some initial struggles in the Range Rover, the monk seemed to have accepted his plight and given over his fate to a higher power.
  2617. Loosening his bow tie, R?my unbuttoned his high, starched, wing-tipped collar and felt as if he could breathe for the first time in years. He went to the limousine's wet bar, where he poured himself a Smirnoff vodka. He drank it in a single swallow and followed it with a second.
  2618. Soon I will be a man of leisure.
  2619. Searching the bar, R?my found a standard service wine-opener and flicked open the sharp blade. The knife was usually employed to slice the lead foil from corks on fine bottles of wine, but it would serve a far more dramatic purpose this morning. R?my turned and faced Silas, holding up the glimmering blade.
  2620. Now those red eyes flashed fear.
  2621. R?my smiled and moved toward the back of the limousine. The monk recoiled, struggling against his bonds.
  2622. Be still, R?my whispered, raising the blade.
  2623. Silas could not believe that God had forsaken him. Even the physical pain of being bound Silas had turned into a spiritual exercise, asking the throb of his blood-starved muscles to remind him of the pain Christ endured. I have been praying all night for liberation. Now, as the knife descended, Silas clenched his eyes shut.
  2624. A slash of pain tore through his shoulder blades. He cried out, unable to believe he was going to die here in the back of this limousine, unable to defend himself. I was doing God's work. The Teacher said he would protect me.
  2625. Silas felt the biting warmth spreading across his back and shoulders and could picture his own blood, spilling out over his flesh. A piercing pain cut through his thighs now, and he felt the onset of that familiar undertow of disorientation—the body's defense mechanism against the pain.
  2626. As the biting heat tore through all of his muscles now, Silas clenched his eyes tighter, determined that the final image of his life would not be of his own killer. Instead he pictured a younger Bishop Aringarosa, standing before the small church in Spain... the church that he and Silas had built with their own hands. The beginning of my life.
  2627. Silas felt as if his body were on fire.
  2628. Take a drink, the tuxedoed man whispered, his accent French. It will help with your circulation.
  2629. Silas's eyes flew open in surprise. A blurry image was leaning over him, offering a glass of liquid. A mound of shredded duct tape lay on the floor beside the bloodless knife.
  2630. Drink this, he repeated. The pain you feel is the blood rushing into your muscles.
  2631. Silas felt the fiery throb transforming now to a prickling sting. The vodka tasted terrible, but he drank it, feeling grateful. Fate had dealt Silas a healthy share of bad luck tonight, but God had solved it all with one miraculous twist.
  2632. God has not forsaken me.
  2633. Silas knew what Bishop Aringarosa would call it.
  2634. Divine intervention.
  2635. I had wanted to free you earlier, the servant apologized, but it was impossible. With the police arriving at Ch?teau Villette, and then at Biggin Hill airport, this was the first possible moment. You understand, don't you, Silas?
  2636. Silas recoiled, startled. You know my name?
  2637. The servant smiled.
  2638. Silas sat up now, rubbing his stiff muscles, his emotions a torrent of incredulity, appreciation, and confusion. Are you... the Teacher?
  2639. R?my shook his head, laughing at the proposition. I wish I had that kind of power. No, I am not the Teacher. Like you, I serve him. But the Teacher speaks highly of you. My name is R?my.
  2640. Silas was amazed. I don't understand. If you work for the Teacher, why did Langdon bring the keystone to your home?
  2641. Not my home. The home of the world's foremost Grail historian, Sir Leigh Teabing.
  2642. But you live there. The odds...
  2643. R?my smiled, seeming to have no trouble with the apparent coincidence of Langdon's chosen refuge. It was all utterly predictable. Robert Langdon was in possession of the keystone, and he needed help. What more logical place to run than to the home of Leigh Teabing? That I happen to live there is why the Teacher approached me in the first place. He paused. How do you think the Teacher knows so much about the Grail?
  2644. Now it dawned, and Silas was stunned. The Teacher had recruited a servant who had access to all of Sir Leigh Teabing's research. It was brilliant.
  2645. There is much I have to tell you, R?my said, handing Silas the loaded Heckler Koch pistol. Then he reached through the open partition and retrieved a small, palm-sized revolver from the glove box. But first, you and I have a job to do.
  2646.  
  2647. Captain Fache descended from his transport plane at Biggin Hill and listened in disbelief to the Kent chief inspector's account of what had happened in Teabing's hangar.
  2648. I searched the plane myself, the inspector insisted, and there was no one inside. His tone turned haughty. And I should add that if Sir Leigh Teabing presses charges against me, I will—
  2649. Did you interrogate the pilot?
  2650. Of course not. He is French, and our jurisdiction requires—
  2651. Take me to the plane.
  2652. Arriving at the hangar, Fache needed only sixty seconds to locate an anomalous smear of blood on the pavement near where the limousine had been parked. Fache walked up to the plane and rapped loudly on the fuselage.
  2653. This is the captain of the French Judicial Police. Open the door!
  2654. The terrified pilot opened the hatch and lowered the stairs.
  2655. Fache ascended. Three minutes later, with the help of his sidearm, he had a full confession, including a description of the bound albino monk. In addition, he learned that the pilot saw Langdon and Sophie leave something behind in Teabing's safe, a wooden box of some sort. Although the pilot denied knowing what was in the box, he admitted it had been the focus of Langdon's full attention during the flight to London.
  2656. Open the safe, Fache demanded.
  2657. The pilot looked terrified. I don't know the combination!
  2658. That's too bad. I was going to offer to let you keep your pilot's license.
  2659. The pilot wrung his hands. I know some men in maintenance here. Maybe they could drill it?
  2660. You have half an hour.
  2661. The pilot leapt for his radio.
  2662. Fache strode to the back of the plane and poured himself a hard drink. It was early, but he had not yet slept, so this hardly counted as drinking before noon. Sitting in a plush bucket seat, he closed his eyes, trying to sort out what was going on. The Kent police's blunder could cost me dearly. Everyone was now on the lookout for a black Jaguar limousine.
  2663. Fache's phone rang, and he wished for a moment's peace. Allo?
  2664. I'm en route to London. It was Bishop Aringarosa. I'll be arriving in an hour.
  2665. Fache sat up. I thought you were going to Paris.
  2666. I am deeply concerned. I have changed my plans.
  2667. You should not have.
  2668. Do you have Silas?
  2669. No. His captors eluded the local police before I landed.
  2670. Aringarosa's anger rang sharply. You assured me you would stop that plane!
  2671. Fache lowered his voice. Bishop, considering your situation, I recommend you not test my patience today. I will find Silas and the others as soon as possible. Where are you landing?
  2672. One moment. Aringarosa covered the receiver and then came back. The pilot is trying to get clearance at Heathrow. I'm his only passenger, but our redirect was unscheduled.
  2673. Tell him to come to Biggin Hill Executive Airport in Kent. I'll get him clearance. If I'm not here when you land, I'll have a car waiting for you.
  2674. Thank you.
  2675. As I expressed when we first spoke, Bishop, you would do well to remember that you are not the only man on the verge of losing everything.
  2676.  
  2677. CHAPTER 85
  2678.  
  2679. You seek the orb that ought be on his tomb.
  2680. Each of the carved knights within the Temple Church lay on his back with his head resting on a rectangular stone pillow. Sophie felt a chill. The poem's reference to an orb conjured images of the night in her grandfather's basement.
  2681. Hieros Gamos. The orbs.
  2682. Sophie wondered if the ritual had been performed in this very sanctuary. The circular room seemed custom-built for such a pagan rite. A stone pew encircled a bare expanse of floor in the middle. A theater in the round, as Robert had called it. She imagined this chamber at night, filled with masked people, chanting by torchlight, all witnessing a sacred communion in the center of the room.
  2683. Forcing the image from her mind, she advanced with Langdon and Teabing toward the first group of knights. Despite Teabing's insistence that their investigation should be conducted meticulously, Sophie felt eager and pushed ahead of them, making a cursory walk-through of the five knights on the left.
  2684. Scrutinizing these first tombs, Sophie noted the similarities and differences between them. Every knight was on his back, but three of the knights had their legs extended straight out while two had their legs crossed. The oddity seemed to have no relevance to the missing orb. Examining their clothing, Sophie noted that two of the knights wore tunics over their armor, while the other three wore ankle-length robes. Again, utterly unhelpful. Sophie turned her attention to the only other obvious difference—their hand positions. Two knights clutched swords, two prayed, and one had his arms at his side. After a long moment looking at the hands, Sophie shrugged, having seen no hint anywhere of a conspicuously absent orb.
  2685. Feeling the weight of the cryptex in her sweater pocket, she glanced back at Langdon and Teabing. The men were moving slowly, still only at the third knight, apparently having no luck either. In no mood to wait, she turned away from them toward the second group of knights.
  2686. As she crossed the open space, she quietly recited the poem she had read so many times now that it was committed to memory.
  2687. In London lies a knight a Pope interred.
  2688. His labor's fruit a Holy wrath incurred.
  2689. You seek the orb that ought be on his tomb.
  2690. It speaks of Rosy flesh and seeded womb.
  2691.  
  2692. When Sophie arrived at the second group of knights, she found that this second group was similar to the first. All lay with varied body positions, wearing armor and swords.
  2693. That was, all except the tenth and final tomb.
  2694. Hurrying over to it, she stared down.
  2695. No pillow. No armor. No tunic. No sword.
  2696. Robert? Leigh? she called, her voice echoing around the chamber. There's something missing over here.
  2697. Both men looked up and immediately began to cross the room toward her.
  2698. An orb? Teabing called excitedly. His crutches clicked out a rapid staccato as he hurried across the room. Are we missing an orb?
  2699. Not exactly, Sophie said, frowning at the tenth tomb. We seem to be missing an entire knight.
  2700. Arriving beside her both men gazed down in confusion at the tenth tomb. Rather than a knight lying in the open air, this tomb was a sealed stone casket. The casket was trapezoidal, tapered at the feet, widening toward the top, with a peaked lid.
  2701. Why isn't this knight shown? Langdon asked.
  2702. Fascinating, Teabing said, stroking his chin. I had forgotten about this oddity. It's been years since I was here.
  2703. This coffin, Sophie said, looks like it was carved at the same time and by the same sculptor as the other nine tombs. So why is this knight in a casket rather than in the open?
  2704. Teabing shook his head. One of this church's mysteries. To the best of my knowledge, nobody has ever found any explanation for it.
  2705. Hello? the altar boy said, arriving with a perturbed look on his face. Forgive me if this seems rude, but you told me you wanted to spread ashes, and yet you seem to be sightseeing.
  2706. Teabing scowled at the boy and turned to Langdon. Mr. Wren, apparently your family's philanthropy does not buy you the time it used to, so perhaps we should take out the ashes and get on with it. Teabing turned to Sophie. Mrs. Wren?
  2707. Sophie played along, pulling the vellum-wrapped cryptex from her pocket.
  2708. Now then, Teabing snapped at the boy, if you would give us some privacy?
  2709. The altar boy did not move. He was eyeing Langdon closely now. You look familiar.
  2710. Teabing huffed. Perhaps that is because Mr. Wren comes here every year!
  2711. Or perhaps, Sophie now feared, because he saw Langdon on television at the Vatican last year.
  2712. I have never met Mr. Wren, the altar boy declared.
  2713. You're mistaken, Langdon said politely. I believe you and I met in passing last year. Father Knowles failed to formally introduce us, but I recognized your face as we came in. Now, I realize this is an intrusion, but if you could afford me a few more minutes, I have traveled a great distance to scatter ashes amongst these tombs. Langdon spoke his lines with Teabing-esque believability.
  2714. The altar boy's expression turned even more skeptical. These are not tombs.
  2715. I'm sorry? Langdon said.
  2716. Of course they are tombs, Teabing declared. What are you talking about?
  2717. The altar boy shook his head. Tombs contain bodies. These are effigies. Stone tributes to real men. There are no bodies beneath these figures.
  2718. This is a crypt! Teabing said.
  2719. Only in outdated history books. This was believed to be a crypt but was revealed as nothing of the sort during the 1950 renovation. He turned back to Langdon. And I imagine Mr. Wren would know that. Considering it was his family that uncovered that fact.
  2720. An uneasy silence fell.
  2721. It was broken by the sound of a door slamming out in the annex.
  2722. That must be Father Knowles, Teabing said. Perhaps you should go see?
  2723. The altar boy looked doubtful but stalked back toward the annex, leaving Langdon, Sophie, and Teabing to eye one another gloomily.
  2724. Leigh, Langdon whispered. No bodies? What is he talking about?
  2725. Teabing looked distraught. I don't know. I always thought... certainly, this must be the place. I can't imagine he knows what he is talking about. It makes no sense!
  2726. Can I see the poem again? Langdon said.
  2727. Sophie pulled the cryptex from her pocket and carefully handed it to him.
  2728. Langdon unwrapped the vellum, holding the cryptex in his hand while he examined the poem. Yes, the poem definitely references a tomb. Not an effigy.
  2729. Could the poem be wrong? Teabing asked. Could Jacques Saunière have made the same mistake I just did?
  2730. Langdon considered it and shook his head. Leigh, you said it yourself. This church was built by Templars, the military arm of the Priory. Something tells me the Grand Master of the Priory would have a pretty good idea if there were knights buried here.
  2731. Teabing looked flabbergasted. But this place is perfect. He wheeled back toward the knights. We must be missing something!
  2732.  
  2733. Entering the annex, the altar boy was surprised to find it deserted. Father Knowles? I know I heard the door, he thought, moving forward until he could see the entryway.
  2734. A thin man in a tuxedo stood near the doorway, scratching his head and looking lost. The altar boy gave an irritated huff, realizing he had forgotten to relock the door when he let the others in. Now some pathetic sod had wandered in off the street, looking for directions to some wedding from the looks of it. I'm sorry, he called out, passing a large pillar, we're closed.
  2735. A flurry of cloth ruffled behind him, and before the altar boy could turn, his head snapped backward, a powerful hand clamping hard over his mouth from behind, muffling his scream. The hand over the boy's mouth was snow-white, and he smelled alcohol.
  2736. The prim man in the tuxedo calmly produced a very small revolver, which he aimed directly at the boy's forehead.
  2737. The altar boy felt his groin grow hot and realized he had wet himself.
  2738. Listen carefully, the tuxedoed man whispered. You will exit this church silently, and you will run. You will not stop. Is that clear?
  2739. The boy nodded as best he could with the hand over his mouth.
  2740. If you call the police... The tuxedoed man pressed the gun to his skin. I will find you.
  2741. The next thing the boy knew, he was sprinting across the outside courtyard with no plans of stopping until his legs gave out.
  2742.  
  2743. CHAPTER 86
  2744.  
  2745. Like a ghost, Silas drifted silently behind his target. Sophie Neveu sensed him too late. Before she could turn, Silas pressed the gun barrel into her spine and wrapped a powerful arm across her chest, pulling her back against his hulking body. She yelled in surprise. Teabing and Langdon both turned now, their expressions astonished and fearful.
  2746. What...? Teabing choked out. What did you do to R?my!
  2747. Your only concern, Silas said calmly, is that I leave here with the keystone. This recovery mission, as R?my had described it, was to be clean and simple: Enter the church, take the keystone, and walk out; no killing, no struggle.
  2748. Holding Sophie firm, Silas dropped his hand from her chest, down to her waist, slipping it inside her deep sweater pockets, searching. He could smell the soft fragrance of her hair through his own alcohol-laced breath. Where is it? he whispered. The keystone was in her sweater pocket earlier. So where is it now?
  2749. It's over here, Langdon's deep voice resonated from across the room.
  2750. Silas turned to see Langdon holding the black cryptex before him, waving it back and forth like a matador tempting a dumb animal.
  2751. Set it down, Silas demanded.
  2752. Let Sophie and Leigh leave the church, Langdon replied. You and I can settle this.
  2753. Silas pushed Sophie away from him and aimed the gun at Langdon, moving toward him.
  2754. Not a step closer, Langdon said. Not until they leave the building.
  2755. You are in no position to make demands.
  2756. I disagree. Langdon raised the cryptex high over his head. I will not hesitate to smash this on the floor and break the vial inside.
  2757. Although Silas sneered outwardly at the threat, he felt a flash of fear. This was unexpected. He aimed the gun at Langdon's head and kept his voice as steady as his hand. You would never break the keystone. You want to find the Grail as much as I do.
  2758. You're wrong. You want it much more. You've proven you're willing to kill for it.
  2759.  
  2760. Forty feet away, peering out from the annex pews near the archway, R?my Legaludec felt a rising alarm. The maneuver had not gone as planned, and even from here, he could see Silas was uncertain how to handle the situation. At the Teacher's orders, R?my had forbidden Silas to fire his gun.
  2761. Let them go, Langdon again demanded, holding the cryptex high over his head and staring into Silas's gun.
  2762. The monk's red eyes filled with anger and frustration, and R?my tightened with fear that Silas might actually shoot Langdon while he was holding the cryptex. The cryptex cannot fall!
  2763. The cryptex was to be R?my's ticket to freedom and wealth. A little over a year ago, he was simply a fifty-five-year-old manservant living within the walls of Ch?teau Villette, catering to the whims of the insufferable cripple Sir Leigh Teabing. Then he was approached with an extraordinary proposition. R?my's association with Sir Leigh Teabing—the preeminent Grail historian on earth—was going to bring R?my everything he had ever dreamed of in life. Since then, every moment he had spent inside Ch?teau Villette had been leading him to this very instant.
  2764. I am so close, R?my told himself, gazing into the sanctuary of the Temple Church and the keystone in Robert Langdon's hand. If Langdon dropped it, all would be lost.
  2765. Am I willing to show my face? It was something the Teacher had strictly forbidden. R?my was the only one who knew the Teacher's identity.
  2766. Are you certain you want Silas to carry out this task? R?my had asked the Teacher less than half an hour ago, upon getting orders to steal the keystone. I myself am capable.
  2767. The Teacher was resolute. Silas served us well with the four Priory members. He will recover the keystone. You must remain anonymous. If others see you, they will need to be eliminated, and there has been enough killing already. Do not reveal your face.
  2768. My face will change, R?my thought. With what you've promised to pay me, I will become an entirely new man. Surgery could even change his fingerprints, the Teacher had told him. Soon he would be free—another unrecognizable, beautiful face soaking up the sun on the beach. Understood, R?my said. I will assist Silas from the shadows.
  2769. For your own knowledge, R?my, the Teacher had told him, the tomb in question is not in the Temple Church. So have no fear. They are looking in the wrong place.
  2770. R?my was stunned. And you know where the tomb is?
  2771. Of course. Later, I will tell you. For the moment, you must act quickly. If the others figure out the true location of the tomb and leave the church before you take the cryptex, we could lose the Grail forever.
  2772. R?my didn't give a damn about the Grail, except that the Teacher refused to pay him until it was found. R?my felt giddy every time he thought of the money he soon would have. One third of twenty million euro. Plenty to disappear forever. R?my had pictured the beach towns on the C?te d'Azur, where he planned to live out his days basking in the sun and letting others serve him for a change.
  2773. Now, however, here in the Temple Church, with Langdon threatening to break the keystone, R?my's future was at risk. Unable to bear the thought of coming this close only to lose it all, R?my made the decision to take bold action. The gun in his hand was a concealable, small-caliber, J-frame Medusa, but it would be plenty deadly at close range.
  2774. Stepping from the shadows, R?my marched into the circular chamber and aimed the gun directly at Teabing's head. Old man, I've been waiting a long time to do this.
  2775.  
  2776. Sir Leigh Teabing's heart practically stalled to see R?my aiming a gun at him. What is he doing! Teabing recognized the tiny Medusa revolver as his own, the one he kept locked in the limousine glove box for safety.
  2777. R?my? Teabing sputtered in shock. What is going on?
  2778. Langdon and Sophie looked equally dumbstruck.
  2779. R?my circled behind Teabing and rammed the pistol barrel into his back, high and on the left, directly behind his heart.
  2780. Teabing felt his muscles seize with terror. R?my, I don't—
  2781. I'll make it simple, R?my snapped, eyeing Langdon over Teabing's shoulder. Set down the keystone, or I pull the trigger.
  2782. Langdon seemed momentarily paralyzed. The keystone is worthless to you, he stammered. You cannot possibly open it.
  2783. Arrogant fools, R?my sneered. Have you not noticed that I have been listening tonight as you discussed these poems? Everything I heard, I have shared with others. Others who know more than you. You are not even looking in the right place. The tomb you seek is in another location entirely!
  2784. Teabing felt panicked. What is he saying!
  2785. Why do you want the Grail? Langdon demanded. To destroy it? Before the End of Days?
  2786. R?my called to the monk. Silas, take the keystone from Mr. Langdon.
  2787. As the monk advanced, Langdon stepped back, raising the keystone high, looking fully prepared to hurl it at the floor.
  2788. I would rather break it, Langdon said, than see it in the wrong hands.
  2789. Teabing now felt a wave of horror. He could see his life's work evaporating before his eyes. All his dreams about to be shattered.
  2790. Robert, no! Teabing exclaimed. Don't! That's the Grail you're holding! R?my would never shoot me. We've known each other for ten—
  2791. R?my aimed at the ceiling and fired the Medusa. The blast was enormous for such a small weapon, the gunshot echoing like thunder inside the stone chamber.
  2792. Everyone froze.
  2793. I am not playing games, R?my said. The next one is in his back. Hand the keystone to Silas.
  2794. Langdon reluctantly held out the cryptex. Silas stepped forward and took it, his red eyes gleaming with the self-satisfaction of vengeance. Slipping the keystone in the pocket of his robe, Silas backed off, still holding Langdon and Sophie at gunpoint.
  2795. Teabing felt R?my's arm clamp hard around his neck as the servant began backing out of the building, dragging Teabing with him, the gun still pressed in his back.
  2796. Let him go, Langdon demanded.
  2797. We're taking Mr. Teabing for a drive, R?my said, still backing up. If you call the police, he will die. If you do anything to interfere, he will die. Is that clear?
  2798. Take me, Langdon demanded, his voice cracking with emotion. Let Leigh go.
  2799. R?my laughed. I don't think so. He and I have such a nice history. Besides, he still might prove useful.
  2800. Silas was backing up now, keeping Langdon and Sophie at gunpoint as R?my pulled Leigh toward the exit, his crutches dragging behind him.
  2801. Sophie's voice was unwavering. Who are you working for?
  2802. The question brought a smirk to the departing R?my's face. You would be surprised, Mademoiselle Neveu.
  2803.  
  2804. CHAPTER 87
  2805.  
  2806. The fireplace in Ch?teau Villette's drawing room was cold, but Collet paced before it nonetheless as he read the faxes from Interpol.
  2807. Not at all what he expected.
  2808. Andr? Vernet, according to official records, was a model citizen. No police record—not even a parking ticket. Educated at prep school and the Sorbonne, he had a cum laude degree in international finance. Interpol said Vernet's name appeared in the newspapers from time to time, but always in a positive light. Apparently the man had helped design the security parameters that kept the Depository Bank of Zurich a leader in the ultramodern world of electronic security. Vernet's credit card records showed a penchant for art books, expensive wine, and classical CD's—mostly Brahms—which he apparently enjoyed on an exceptionally high-end stereo system he had purchased several years ago.
  2809. Zero, Collet sighed.
  2810. The only red flag tonight from Interpol had been a set of fingerprints that apparently belonged to Teabing's servant. The chief PTS examiner was reading the report in a comfortable chair across the room.
  2811. Collet looked over. Anything?
  2812. The examiner shrugged. Prints belong to R?my Legaludec. Wanted for petty crime. Nothing serious. Looks like he got kicked out of university for rewiring phone jacks to get free service... later did some petty theft. Breaking and entering. Skipped out on a hospital bill once for an emergency tracheotomy. He glanced up, chuckling. Peanut allergy.
  2813. Collet nodded, recalling a police investigation into a restaurant that had failed to notate on its menu that the chili recipe contained peanut oil. An unsuspecting patron had died of anaphylactic shock at the table after a single bite.
  2814. Legaludec is probably a live-in here to avoid getting picked up. The examiner looked amused. His lucky night.
  2815. Collet sighed. All right, you better forward this info to Captain Fache.
  2816. The examiner headed off just as another PTS agent burst into the living room. Lieutenant! We found something in the barn.
  2817. From the anxious look on the agent's face, Collet could only guess. A body.
  2818. No, sir. Something more... He hesitated. Unexpected.
  2819. Rubbing his eyes, Collet followed the agent out to the barn. As they entered the musty, cavernous space, the agent motioned toward the center of the room, where a wooden ladder now ascended high into the rafters, propped against the ledge of a hayloft suspended high above them.
  2820. That ladder wasn't there earlier, Collet said.
  2821. No, sir. I set that up. We were dusting for prints near the Rolls when I saw the ladder lying on the floor. I wouldn't have given it a second thought except the rungs were worn and muddy. This ladder gets regular use. The height of the hayloft matched the ladder, so I raised it and climbed up to have a look.
  2822. Collet's eyes climbed the ladder's steep incline to the soaring hayloft. Someone goes up there regularly? From down here, the loft appeared to be a deserted platform, and yet admittedly most of it was invisible from this line of sight.
  2823. A senior PTS agent appeared at the top of the ladder, looking down. You'll definitely want to see this, Lieutenant, he said, waving Collet up with a latex-gloved hand.
  2824. Nodding tiredly, Collet walked over to the base of the old ladder and grasped the bottom rungs. The ladder was an antique tapered design and narrowed as Collet ascended. As he neared the top, Collet almost lost his footing on a thin rung. The barn below him spun. Alert now, he moved on, finally reaching the top. The agent above him reached out, offering his wrist. Collet grabbed it and made the awkward transition onto the platform.
  2825. It's over there, the PTS agent said, pointing deep into the immaculately clean loft. Only one set of prints up here. We'll have an ID shortly.
  2826. Collet squinted through the dim light toward the far wall. What the hell? Nestled against the far wall sat an elaborate computer workstation—two tower CPUs, a flat-screen video monitor with speakers, an array of hard drives, and a multichannel audio console that appeared to have its own filtered power supply.
  2827. Why in the world would anyone work all the way up here? Collet moved toward the gear. Have you examined the system?
  2828. It's a listening post.
  2829. Collet spun. Surveillance?
  2830. The agent nodded. Very advanced surveillance. He motioned to a long project table strewn with electronic parts, manuals, tools, wires, soldering irons, and other electronic components. Someone clearly knows what he's doing. A lot of this gear is as sophisticated as our own equipment. Miniature microphones, photoelectric recharging cells, high-capacity RAM chips. He's even got some of those new nano drives.
  2831. Collet was impressed.
  2832. Here's a complete system, the agent said, handing Collet an assembly not much larger than a pocket calculator. Dangling off the contraption was a foot-long wire with a stamp-sized piece of wafer-thin foil stuck on the end. The base is a high-capacity hard disk audio recording system with rechargeable battery. That strip of foil at the end of the wire is a combination microphone and photoelectric recharging cell.
  2833. Collet knew them well. These foil-like, photocell microphones had been an enormous breakthrough a few years back. Now, a hard disk recorder could be affixed behind a lamp, for example, with its foil microphone molded into the contour of the base and dyed to match. As long as the microphone was positioned such that it received a few hours of sunlight per day, the photo cells would keep recharging the system. Bugs like this one could listen indefinitely.
  2834. Reception method? Collet asked.
  2835. The agent signaled to an insulated wire that ran out of the back of the computer, up the wall, through a hole in the barn roof. Simple radio wave. Small antenna on the roof.
  2836. Collet knew these recording systems were generally placed in offices, were voice-activated to save hard disk space, and recorded snippets of conversation during the day, transmitting compressed audio files at night to avoid detection. After transmitting, the hard drive erased itself and prepared to do it all over again the next day.
  2837. Collet's gaze moved now to a shelf on which were stacked several hundred audio cassettes, all labeled with dates and numbers. Someone has been very busy. He turned back to the agent. Do you have any idea what target is being bugged?
  2838. Well, Lieutenant, the agent said, walking to the computer and launching a piece of software. It's the strangest thing....
  2839.  
  2840. CHAPTER 88
  2841.  
  2842. Langdon felt utterly spent as he and Sophie hurdled a turnstile at the Temple tube station and dashed deep into the grimy labyrinth of tunnels and platforms. The guilt ripped through him.
  2843. I involved Leigh, and now he's in enormous danger.
  2844. R?my's involvement had been a shock, and yet it made sense. Whoever was pursuing the Grail had recruited someone on the inside. They went to Teabing's for the same reason I did. Throughout history, those who held knowledge of the Grail had always been magnets for thieves and scholars alike. The fact that Teabing had been a target all along should have made Langdon feel less guilty about involving him. It did not. We need to find Leigh and help him. Immediately.
  2845. Langdon followed Sophie to the westbound District and Circle Line platform, where she hurried to a pay phone to call the police, despite R?my's warning to the contrary. Langdon sat on a grungy bench nearby, feeling remorseful.
  2846. The best way to help Leigh, Sophie reiterated as she dialed, is to involve the London authorities immediately. Trust me.
  2847. Langdon had not initially agreed with this idea, but as they had hatched their plan, Sophie's logic began to make sense. Teabing was safe at the moment. Even if R?my and the others knew where the knight's tomb was located, they still might need Teabing's help deciphering the orb reference. What worried Langdon was what would happen after the Grail map had been found. Leigh will become a huge liability.
  2848. If Langdon were to have any chance of helping Leigh, or of ever seeing the keystone again, it was essential that he find the tomb first. Unfortunately, R?my has a big head start.
  2849. Slowing R?my down had become Sophie's task.
  2850. Finding the right tomb had become Langdon's.
  2851. Sophie would make R?my and Silas fugitives of the London police, forcing them into hiding or, better yet, catching them. Langdon's plan was less certain—to take the tube to nearby King's College, which was renowned for its electronic theological database. The ultimate research tool, Langdon had heard. Instant answers to any religious historical question. He wondered what the database would have to say about a knight a Pope interred.
  2852. He stood up and paced, wishing the train would hurry.
  2853.  
  2854. At the pay phone, Sophie's call finally connected to the London police.
  2855. Snow Hill Division, the dispatcher said. How may I direct your call?
  2856. I'm reporting a kidnapping. Sophie knew to be concise.
  2857. Name please?
  2858. Sophie paused. Agent Sophie Neveu with the French Judicial Police.
  2859. The title had the desired effect. Right away, ma'am. Let me get a detective on the line for you.
  2860. As the call went through, Sophie began wondering if the police would even believe her description of Teabing's captors. A man in a tuxedo. How much easier to identify could a suspect be? Even if R?my changed clothes, he was partnered with an albino monk. Impossible to miss. Moreover, they had a hostage and could not take public transportation. She wondered how many Jaguar stretch limos there could be in London.
  2861. Sophie's connection to the detective seemed to be taking forever. Come on! She could hear the line clicking and buzzing, as if she was being transferred.
  2862. Fifteen seconds passed.
  2863. Finally a man came on the line. Agent Neveu?
  2864. Stunned, Sophie registered the gruff tone immediately.
  2865. Agent Neveu, Bezu Fache demanded. Where the hell are you?
  2866. Sophie was speechless. Captain Fache had apparently requested the London police dispatcher alert him if Sophie called in.
  2867. Listen, Fache said, speaking to her in terse French. I made a terrible mistake tonight. Robert Langdon is innocent. All charges against him have been dropped. Even so, both of you are in danger. You need to come in.
  2868. Sophie's jaw fell slack. She had no idea how to respond. Fache was not a man who apologized for anything.
  2869. You did not tell me, Fache continued, that Jacques Saunière was your grandfather. I fully intend to overlook your insubordination last night on account of the emotional stress you must be under. At the moment, however, you and Langdon need to go to the nearest London police headquarters for refuge.
  2870. He knows I'm in London? What else does Fache know? Sophie heard what sounded like drilling or machinery in the background. She also heard an odd clicking on the line. Are you tracing this call, Captain?
  2871. Fache's voice was firm now. You and I need to cooperate, Agent Neveu. We both have a lot to lose here. This is damage control. I made errors in judgment last night, and if those errors result in the deaths of an American professor and a DCPJ cryptologist, my career will be over. I've been trying to pull you back into safety for the last several hours.
  2872. A warm wind was now pushing through the station as a train approached with a low rumble. Sophie had every intention of being on it. Langdon apparently had the same idea; he was gathering himself together and moving toward her now.
  2873. The man you want is R?my Legaludec, Sophie said. He is Teabing's servant. He just kidnapped Teabing inside the Temple Church and—
  2874. Agent Neveu! Fache bellowed as the train thundered into the station. This is not something to discuss on an open line. You and Langdon will come in now. For your own well-being! That is a direct order!
  2875. Sophie hung up and dashed with Langdon onto the train.
  2876.  
  2877. CHAPTER 89
  2878.  
  2879. The immaculate cabin of Teabing's Hawker was now covered with steel shavings and smelled of compressed air and propane. Bezu Fache had sent everyone away and sat alone with his drink and the heavy wooden box found in Teabing's safe.
  2880. Running his finger across the inlaid Rose, he lifted the ornate lid. Inside he found a stone cylinder with lettered dials. The five dials were arranged to spell SOFIA. Fache stared at the word a long moment and then lifted the cylinder from its padded resting place and examined every inch. Then, pulling slowly on the ends, Fache slid off one of the end caps. The cylinder was empty.
  2881. Fache set it back in the box and gazed absently out the jet's window at the hangar, pondering his brief conversation with Sophie, as well as the information he'd received from PTS in Ch?teau Villette. The sound of his phone shook him from his daydream.
  2882. It was the DCPJ switchboard. The dispatcher was apologetic. The president of the Depository Bank of Zurich had been calling repeatedly, and although he had been told several times that the captain was in London on business, he just kept calling. Begrudgingly Fache told the operator to forward the call.
  2883. Monsieur Vernet, Fache said, before the man could even speak, I am sorry I did not call you earlier. I have been busy. As promised, the name of your bank has not appeared in the media. So what precisely is your concern?
  2884. Vernet's voice was anxious as he told Fache how Langdon and Sophie had extracted a small wooden box from the bank and then persuaded Vernet to help them escape. Then when I heard on the radio that they were criminals, Vernet said, I pulled over and demanded the box back, but they attacked me and stole the truck.
  2885. You are concerned for a wooden box, Fache said, eyeing the Rose inlay on the cover and again gently opening the lid to reveal the white cylinder. Can you tell me what was in the box?
  2886. The contents are immaterial, Vernet fired back. I am concerned with the reputation of my bank. We have never had a robbery. Ever. It will ruin us if I cannot recover this property on behalf of my client.
  2887. You said Agent Neveu and Robert Langdon had a password and a key. What makes you say they stole the box?
  2888. They murdered people tonight. Including Sophie Neveu's grandfather. The key and password were obviously ill-gotten.
  2889. Mr. Vernet, my men have done some checking into your background and your interests. You are obviously a man of great culture and refinement. I would imagine you are a man of honor, as well. As am I. That said, I give you my word as commanding officer of the Police Judiciaire that your box, along with your bank's reputation, are in the safest of hands.
  2890.  
  2891. CHAPTER 90
Advertisement
Add Comment
Please, Sign In to add comment
Advertisement